Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n father_n name_n son_n 14,571 5 5.9519 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A41489 The blasphemous Socinian heresie disproved and confuted wherein the doctrinal and controversial parts of those points are handled, and the adversaries scripture and school-arguments answered : with animadversions upon a late book called, Christianity not mysterious, humbly dedicated to both houses of parliament / by J. Gailhard ... Gailhard, J. (Jean) 1697 (1697) Wing G117; ESTC R12826 295,019 394

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

they_o do_v penetrate_v one_o another_o for_o they_o most_o perfect_o and_o infinite_o know_v and_o love_v one_o another_o now_o love_n be_v a_o earnest_n desire_v of_o union_n so_o than_o they_o be_v most_o entire_o unite_v the_o apostle_n make_v the_o necessary_a difference_n of_o the_o three_o on_o earth_n he_o say_v they_o agree_v in_o one_o but_o of_o the_o three_o in_o heaven_n he_o say_v they_o be_v one._n moreover_o either_o one_o know_v something_o which_o the_o other_o do_v not_o or_o love_v something_o which_o the_o other_o do_v not_o love_n or_o can_v do_v something_o which_o the_o other_o can_v do_v or_o not_o if_o the_o former_a how_o be_v they_o god_n for_o god_n know_v and_o can_v do_v all_o if_o the_o last_o than_o not_o only_o they_o have_v one_o will_n but_o also_o one_o mind_n one_o power_n one_o knowledge_n one_o love_n now_o let_v man_n think_v upon_o several_a nature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n which_o mutual_o do_v penetrate_v themselves_o and_o by_o a_o mutual_a inclination_n do_v embrace_v and_o unite_v themselves_o inseparable_o and_o have_v the_o same_o thought_n will_n and_o action_n do_v not_o all_o this_o conclude_v for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n but_o in_o some_o manner_n of_o exist_v which_o because_o they_o be_v such_o be_v distinct_a one_o from_o another_o without_o confusion_n all_o which_o from_o oneness_n of_o will_n lead_v to_o oneness_n of_o essence_n for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n different_a from_o his_o nature_n another_o text_n wherein_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o not_o only_o may_v be_v read_v but_o also_o be_v hear_v and_o see_v be_v that_o about_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n where_o the_o father_n speak_v from_o heaven_n and_o call_v he_o his_o son_n christ_n the_o son_n be_v baptize_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n if_o man_n do_v believe_v scripture_n this_o they_o must_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a s._n austin_n look_v upon_o this_o text_n as_o a_o strong_a and_o convince_a proof_n of_o that_o divine_a and_o essential_a truth_n vade_fw-la ad_fw-la jordanem_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v he_o go_v to_o the_o river_n jordan_n and_o there_o thou_o shall_v find_v the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o verity_n thereof_o beside_o these_o we_o have_v a_o cloud_n of_o other_o witness_n to_o prove_v this_o truth_n where_o the_o three_o person_n be_v mention_v under_o their_o proper_a name_n and_o first_o 23._o first_o act_n 2.22_o 23._o this_o jesus_n be_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n exalt_v and_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o person_n be_v plain_o name_v again_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n be_v declare_v 4._o declare_v rom._n 1.3_o 4._o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n elsewhere_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v 6._o say_v tit._n 3.4_o 5_o 6._o god_n save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 4.6_o place_n gal._n 4.6_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n by_o the_o word_n god_n be_v mean_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n 9.14_o father_n heb._n 9.14_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n furthermore_o 2.18_o furthermore_o ephes_n 2.18_o through_o he_o christ_n we_o both_o have_v a_o access_n by_o one_o spirit_n unto_o the_o father_n our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o out_o of_o his_o own_o sacred_a mouth_n do_v plain_o and_o positive_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n when_o he_o say_v 14.16.17_o say_v john_n 14.16.17_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n the_o father_n i_o the_o son_n and_o the_o comforter_n who_o he_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v three_o person_n which_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 26._o chapter_n chap._n 15_o 26._o be_v by_o he_o repeat_v but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v to_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n one_o text_n more_o i_o shall_v bring_v to_o confirm_v this_o 13.14_o this_o 2_o cor._n 13.14_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v with_o you_o all_o and_o in_o the_o text_n of_o another_o apostle_n 1.2_o apostle_n 1_o pet._n 1.2_o be_v contain_v the_o working_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n elect_v according_a to_o the_o before_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n unto_o obedience_n and_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v full_a of_o proof_n to_o confirm_v this_o holy_a doctrine_n for_o indeed_o these_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n be_v more_o clear_o and_o full_o therein_o relate_v so_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o confute_v the_o enemy_n of_o this_o truth_n and_o because_o we_o look_v upon_o socinian_o in_o their_o principle_n to_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o jew_n and_o as_o well_o as_o they_o blasphemer_n against_o our_o holy_a and_o bless_a saviour_n so_o we_o will_v bring_v such_o argument_n against_o they_o as_o we_o will_v if_o we_o be_v dispute_v against_o unbelieving_a jew_n only_o a_o few_o text_n out_o of_o many_o we_o begin_v with_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n chap._n 1._o wherein_o be_v contain_v a_o relation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o be_v a_o work_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o though_o we_o may_v not_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o the_o clear_a upon_o the_o matter_n yet_o in_o it_o be_v light_a enough_o to_o show_v the_o truth_n we_o now_o assert_v i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o of_o the_o name_n god_n under_o that_o of_o elohim_n which_o already_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o as_o represent_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n but_o we_o may_v say_v that_o though_o the_o name_n god_n be_v there_o which_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o singular_a and_o take_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n yet_o the_o son_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o act_n of_o creation_n for_o it_o be_v god_n say_v here_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o the_o son_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o in_o scripture_n especial_o by_o s._n john_n be_v so_o often_o call_v by_o that_o name_n the_o word_n god_n say_v and_o speak_v be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o world_n we_o read_v god_n say_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v create_v which_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o be_v speak_v by_o john_n 1.3_o john_n john_n 1.3_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o that_o be_v the_o word_n the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la act_v be_v proper_a to_o person_n and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v now_o that_o word_n god_n say_v be_v that_o which_o create_v every_o thing_n so_o then_o here_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n but_o we_o also_o find_v the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1.2_o gen._n 1.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o water_n by_o his_o act_n represent_v by_o motion_n to_o cherish_v give_v life_n and_o motion_n to_o thing_n as_o a_o hen_n do_v when_o sit_v upon_o her_o egg_n for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_a signify_v such_o a_o thing_n this_o sense_n be_v give_v by_o a_o competent_a interpreter_n 33.6.9_o interpreter_n psal_n 33.6.9_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n make_v and_o all_o the_o host_n thereof_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n here_o we_o can_v read_v distinct_o the_o lord_n if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o person_n about_o which_o there_o be_v no_o dispute_n the_o word_n and_o the_o breath_n or_o spirit_n this_o though_o it_o be_v clear_a i_o can_v set_v in_o a_o great_a light_n with_o compare_v it_o with_o other_o place_n which_o i_o now_o forbear_v to_o do_v because_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o in_o some_o other_o branch_n of_o my_o discourse_n another_o text_n be_v this_o 42.1_o this_o isai_n 42.1_o behold_v my_o servant_n who_o i_o uphold_v my_o elect_a in_o who_o my_o soul_n delight_v i_o have_v put_v my_o spirit_n upon_o he_o beside_o the_o person_n that_o speak_v namely_o the_o father_n here_o we_o have_v the_o son_n under_o the_o name_n
of_o his_o servant_n of_o his_o elect_a in_o who_o his_o soul_n delight_v whereby_o none_o may_v deny_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v understand_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o spirit_n nothing_o better_a than_o this_o can_v quadrate_n with_o the_o history_n of_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n 3.16_o baptism_n matth._n 3.16_o and_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o same_o prophet_n 6.3_o prophet_n i●al_n 6.3_o when_o he_o see_v the_o vision_n and_o hear_v that_o trisagion_n or_o holy_a holy_a holy_a which_o long_o after_o be_v also_o hear_v by_o john_n 8._o john_n rev._n 4_o 8._o that_o threefold_a repetition_n of_o god_n name_n compare_v with_o the_o proper_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o ancient_a jew_n '_o that_o it_o signify_v three_o thing_n in_o god_n be_v adapt_v to_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o s._n john_n vision_n we_o have_v some_o enlargement_n as_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n represent_v by_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o same_o twenty_o four_o elder_n and_o four_o beast_n 13._o beast_n rev._n 5.8_o 9_o 13._o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n and_o sing_v a_o new_a song_n and_o every_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n pay_v the_o same_o worship_n to_o the_o lamb_n as_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n again_o the_o same_o prophet_n 61.1_o prophet_n isai_n 61.1_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o for_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o this_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n as_o apply_v luke_n 4.18_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o anoint_v for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n that_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n these_o three_o be_v also_o to_o be_v read_v among_o the_o last_o word_n of_o david_n 23.2_o david_n 2_o sam._n 23.2_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o i_o and_o the_o word_n be_v in_o my_o tongue_n here_o be_v the_o lord_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v another_o prophet_n 2.5_o prophet_n hagg._n 2.5_o according_a to_o the_o word_n that_o i_o covenant_v with_o you_o when_o you_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n so_o my_o spirit_n remain_v among_o you_o the_o father_n with_o the_o word_n his_o son_n and_o his_o spirit_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o israel_n there_o be_v several_a other_o text_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o one_o which_o i_o already_o make_v use_n of_o i_o mean_v of_o the_o thrice_o holy_a wherein_o the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o lord_n be_v thrice_o repeat_v i_o own_o i_o have_v such_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n as_o to_o believe_v there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o his_o word_n but_o what_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a reason_n for_o it_o to_o be_v in_o and_o in_o this_o belief_n of_o i_o i_o be_o confirm_v by_o what_o our_o bless_a saviour_n say_v in_o earnest_n and_o with_o a_o strong_a asseveration_n 5.18_o asseveration_n matt._n 5.18_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v one_o jot_n or_o one_o tittle_n shall_v in_o no_o wise_a pass_n from_o the_o law_n till_o all_o be_v fulfil_v and_o i_o be_o sufficient_o satisfy_v that_o though_o through_o the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o nature_n in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o our_o mind_n we_o can_v apprehend_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o therein_o be_v nothing_o without_o a_o cause_n so_o out_o of_o that_o principle_n i_o dare_v say_v god_n mean_v something_o when_o in_o the_o blessing_n which_o he_o prescribe_v to_o be_v pronounce_v to_o the_o people_n the_o lord_n name_n be_v thrice_o in_o it_o thus_o 26._o thus_o numb_a 6.24_o 25_o 26._o the_o lord_n bless_v thou_o and_o keep_v thou_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o face_n shine_v upon_o thou_o and_o be_v gracious_a unto_o thou_o the_o lord_n lift_v up_o his_o countenance_n upon_o thou_o and_o give_v thou_o peace_n and_o when_o god_n speak_v unto_o moses_n he_o dictate_v what_o he_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o they_o in_o his_o name_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o your_o father_n one_o will_v have_v think_v this_o have_v be_v enough_o but_o no_o for_o he_o add_v 3.15_o add_v exod._n 3.15_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n it_o be_v the_o same_o god_n yet_o thrice_o name_v so_o when_o the_o law_n be_v give_v he_o say_v 20.5_o say_v exod._n 20.5_o i_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_o a_o jealous_a god_n once_o lord_n and_o twice_o god_n which_o be_v the_o same_o so_o in_o another_o place_n the_o 3._o the_o psalm_n 136.1_o 2_o 3._o psalmist_n exhort_v thrice_o to_o give_v thanks_o to_o who_o unto_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o god_n of_o god_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n one_o more_o i_o shall_v quote_v and_o it_o be_v this_o 33.22_o this_o isa_n 33.22_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o judge_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o lawgiver_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o king_n why_o thrice_o and_o no_o more_o sure_o god_n aim_v at_o something_o for_o as_o he_o do_v nothing_o so_o he_o say_v nothing_o in_o vain_a these_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o by_o chance_n and_o see_v with_o a_o full_a assurance_n i_o believe_v according_a to_o revelation_n a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n why_o shall_v not_o i_o also_o believe_v that_o these_o thing_n relate_v to_o it_o now_o if_o one_o will_v serious_o attend_v upon_o these_o quote_v place_n and_o compare_v they_o with_o other_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n may_v be_v god_n will_v impart_v upon_o the_o matter_n great_a discovery_n than_o i_o for_o the_o present_a be_o able_a to_o give_v only_o this_o i_o shall_v add_v how_o the_o name_n jehovah_n call_v in_o greek_a tetragrammaton_fw-gr because_o it_o original_o consist_v only_o of_o four_o letter_n signify_v both_o god_n self-existence_n for_o the_o root_n whence_o it_o be_v derive_v do_v denote_v to_o be_v and_o also_o his_o eternity_n for_o it_o contain_v all_o time_n to_o come_v present_a and_o past_a one_o out_o of_o the_o two_o first_o letter_n draw_v the_o word_n beginning_n and_o to_o live_v and_o the_o three_o have_v a_o virtue_n of_o copulate_v or_o join_v together_o be_v for_o love_n whereby_o be_v denote_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o by_o the_o two_o before_o be_v father_n and_o son_n and_o because_o the_o second_o letter_n h_z be_v twice_o in_o he_o will_v have_v both_o nature_n in_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n to_o be_v mean_v though_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o these_o mysterious_a interpretation_n which_o may_v be_v well_o ground_v yet_o we_o build_v not_o our_o main_a argument_n thereupon_o however_o know_v that_o essential_a and_o incommunicable_a holy_a name_n to_o confist_n of_o three_o different_a letter_n i_o can_v see_v nothing_o to_o hinder_v i_o from_o believe_v that_o that_o same_o nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o three_o person_n and_o as_o the_o same_o letter_n be_v twice_o in_o it_o do_v signify_v two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n especial_o it_o fall_v upon_o the_o second_o letter_n relate_v to_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n and_o as_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o name_n why_o may_v not_o he_o in_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n therein_o denote_v some_o mystery_n this_o i_o take_v to_o be_v rational_a here_o i_o must_v not_o omit_v for_o proof_n of_o this_o great_a truth_n to_o bring_v in_o our_o creed_n call_v the_o apostolical_a as_o a_o evidence_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o other_o for_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o own_v they_o though_o they_o ever_o be_v by_o better_a more_o learned_a more_o pious_a and_o sound_a in_o all_o age_n than_o they_o be_v or_o i_o doubt_v can_v be_v i_o know_v the_o world_n have_v afford_v some_o man_n who_o out_o of_o a_o vainglory_n and_o to_o seem_v to_o be_v something_o through_o a_o trial_n of_o their_o part_n have_v attempt_v to_o enervate_a with_o their_o criticism_n the_o strength_n and_o orthodoxy_n of_o these_o creed_n but_o as_o to_o this_o socinian_n themselves_o can_v except_v against_o it_o no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v against_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n whence_o this_o be_v extract_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o three_o name_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o as_o the_o word_n god_n be_v express_v when_o join_v with_o the_o father_n so_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o to_o they_o it_o also_o do_v belong_v and_o as_o there_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o that_o be_v to_o
essential_o exclusive_o not_o to_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o to_o idol_n and_o creature_n the_o word_n father_n be_v here_o take_v for_o god_n as_o it_o be_v when_o say_v one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o and_o abba-father_n 8.15_o ephes_n 4.6_o rom._n 8.15_o also_o the_o father_n of_o spirit_n the_o word_n our_o father_n be_v often_o take_v for_o our_o god_n and_o lord_n in_o those_o place_n the_o word_n father_n be_v say_v relative_o not_o to_o the_o son_n 3.13_o heb._n 12.9_o matth._n 10.21_o 29._o luke_n 30.32_o john_n 14.13_o chap._n 3.13_o but_o to_o man_n who_o father_n god_n be_v the_o thing_n in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n ask_v and_o pray_v for_o be_v ask_v of_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o father_n as_o the_o come_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n whence_o say_v our_o lord_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o i_o will_v do_v and_o the_o word_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o son_n as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n too_o as_o appeareth_z out_o of_o psal_n 139.7_o 8._o and_o matth._n 3.16_o nay_o as_o we_o say_v before_o the_o son_n be_v call_v the_o everlasting_a father_n and_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n which_o in_o the_o original_a signify_v to_o preserve_v all_o thing_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o be_v a_o father_n indeed_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v uphold_v and_o preserve_v which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n within_o we_o bear_v witness_n unto_o when_o our_o heart_n lay_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o trouble_n or_o mercy_n do_v on_o a_o sudden_a by_o mean_n of_o a_o ejaculatory_a prayer_n either_o in_o thought_n word_n or_o both_o pour_v itself_o before_o he_o beg_v for_o help_n or_o give_v thanks_o break_v out_o upon_o occasion_n into_o these_o or_o the_o like_a expression_n lord_n jesus_n have_v pity_n on_o i_o or_o lord_n jesus_n make_v i_o thankful_a thus_o i_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v under_o those_o several_a head_n bring_v in_o proof_n for_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n divinity_n of_o many_o more_o which_o scripture_n afford_v i_o shall_v take_v notice_n but_o of_o few_o wherein_o he_o be_v proper_o and_o true_o call_v god_n which_o to_o assert_v be_v the_o main_a drift_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n for_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a he_o shall_v be_v god_n by_o nature_n or_o else_o any_o man_n may_v have_v preach_v teach_v pray_v give_v good_a example_n and_o make_v intercession_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n and_o if_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o die_v only_o to_o teach_v we_o good_a doctrine_n and_o give_v we_o good_a example_n he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n who_o teach_v good_a doctrine_n and_o give_v good_a example_n so_o may_v as_o well_o be_v call_v our_o mediator_n and_o saviour_n if_o this_o have_v as_o they_o say_v be_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o the_o mediator_n our_o redemption_n have_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o be_v perform_v but_o i_o say_v that_o his_o threefold_a office_n of_o mediatorship_n prophecy_n kingship_n and_o priesthood_n demonstrate_v he_o to_o be_v true_a essential_a god_n for_o none_o of_o the_o three_o can_v perfect_o have_v be_v perform_v but_o by_o a_o god_n himself_o as_o to_o the_o prophetical_a to_o enlighten_v the_o understanding_n and_o effectual_o to_o turn_v the_o heart_n as_o to_o the_o regal_a to_o defend_v believer_n against_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o as_o to_o the_o priestly_a to_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n favour_n of_o god_n and_o glory_n none_o of_o these_o can_v be_v obtain_v but_o by_o he_o who_o be_v infinite_a as_o in_o power_n so_o in_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o infinite_a distance_n between_o god_n who_o be_v infinite_a and_o every_o finite_a creature_n no_o proportion_n between_o infinite_a and_o finite_a scripture_n ow_v nothing_o but_o god_n to_o be_v high_a than_o angel_n now_o christ_n be_v high_a and_o above_o all_o angel_n beside_o that_o the_o necessity_n of_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v give_v to_o divine_a justice_n do_v argue_v a_o necessity_n for_o christ_n to_o be_v god_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n can_v not_o have_v be_v adequate_a as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v except_o he_o be_v god_n and_o this_o divinity_n in_o he_o do_v prove_v the_o plurality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n which_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o difficulty_n allege_v against_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n certain_o the_o great_a design_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o be_v to_o preach_v christ_n to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o god_n son_n of_o god_n whereby_o their_o ministry_n be_v exalt_v this_o be_v the_o foundation_n they_o be_v to_o build_v upon_o 8.37_o act_n 8.37_o the_o eunuch_n must_v make_v this_o confession_n i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o can_v be_v baptize_v so_o do_v every_o one_o else_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n this_o in_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n to_o be_v know_v and_o preach_v thus_o paul_n after_o his_o conversion_n 9.20_o chap._n 9.20_o the_o first_o thing_n he_o do_v be_v to_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v the_o great_a question_n the_o jew_n deny_v he_o not_o to_o be_v man_n son_n of_o man_n but_o he_o go_v about_o to_o convince_v they_o how_o also_o he_o be_v god_n son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o be_v by_o nature_n god_n as_o certain_o as_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v man_n wherefore_o he_o will_v raise_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o corinthian_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o christ_n humanity_n to_o that_o of_o his_o deity_n when_o he_o say_v 5.16_o 2_o cor._n 5.16_o though_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n yet_o now_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o no_o more_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n not_o in_o the_o humane_a but_o in_o the_o divine_a nature_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o glorious_a name_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o 2.8_o act._n 3.14_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 2.8_o and_o the_o just_a the_o prince_n of_o life_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n have_v so_o often_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n after_o his_o ascension_n when_o he_o have_v a_o full_a possession_n of_o that_o glory_n as_o it_o be_v to_o confirm_v from_o heaven_n what_o he_o have_v declare_v upon_o earth_n in_o the_o revelation_n he_o make_v to_o that_o disciple_n of_o he_o who_o do_v so_o eminent_o bear_v witness_n of_o his_o divinity_n 15._o 1_o joh._n 4.14_o 15._o when_o he_o say_v we_o have_v see_v and_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n send_v the_o son_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n and_o not_o otherwise_o i_o say_v on_o that_o occasion_n the_o lord_n jesus_n from_o heaven_n proclaim_v himself_o to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o letter_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o thiatira_n with_o this_o glorious_a description_n 15._o rev._n 2.18_o compare_v with_o chap._n 1.14_o 15._o these_o thing_n say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o have_v his_o eye_n like_v unto_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o his_o foot_n like_v unto_o fine_a brass_n though_o his_o enemy_n will_v not_o hear_v he_o upon_o earth_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o humiliation_n when_o through_o his_o passive_a obedience_n he_o be_v about_o perform_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o priestly_a office_n to_o satisfy_v divine_a justice_n and_o make_v expiation_n for_o our_o sin_n i_o think_v now_o they_o shall_v when_o he_o speak_v from_o heaven_n whence_o he_o exercise_v his_o royal_a office_n i_o know_v well_o enough_o how_o what_o i_o say_v about_o his_o satisfy_n divine_a justice_n through_o his_o death_n do_v not_o affect_v his_o enemy_n who_o deny_v he_o have_v give_v satisfaction_n for_o we_o but_o what_o can_v his_o intercession_n on_o in_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o priesthood_n be_v ground_v upon_o but_o his_o own_o merit_n through_o his_o suffering_n and_o death_n he_o thereby_o have_v pay_v our_o debt_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o payment_n he_o ask_v we_o shall_v be_v release_v but_o that_o point_n i_o intend_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o in_o this_o place_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o name_n saviour_n be_v as_o proper_a to_o he_o as_o that_o of_o christ_n as_o indeed_o that_o of_o jesus_n the_o same_o with_o saviour_n be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o angel_n and_o
by_o eccles_n by_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n cyprian_a and_o also_o by_o tertullian_n ignatius_n etc._n etc._n this_o text_n do_v so_o well_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o the_o evangelist_n to_o baptize_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o it_o do_v allude_v unto_o that_o none_o may_v doubt_v but_o it_o be_v suggest_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o the_o name_n word_n particular_a to_o st._n john_n do_v sufficient_o witness_v how_o those_o line_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n come_v out_o of_o his_o pen_n non_fw-la unus_fw-la sed_fw-la unum_fw-la say_v one_o of_o the_o forequote_v father_n not_o one_o person_n sed_fw-la unum_fw-la etc._n etc._n one_o nature_n not_o only_o the_o unity_n of_o testimony_n as_o they_o be_v three_o distinct_a witness_n not_o only_o the_o unity_n of_o consent_n and_o will_n but_o also_o of_o nature_n as_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o 10.30_o joh_n 10.30_o which_o the_o jew_n understand_v very_o well_o for_o thereupon_o they_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o take_v up_o stone_n to_o have_v cast_v at_o he_o the_o reason_n they_o give_v for_o it_o be_v this_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n 33._o v._o 33._o make_v thyself_o god_n in_o few_o word_n we_o can_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n except_o the_o name_n of_o these_o three_o equal_a in_o authority_n dignity_n and_o essence_n be_v call_v upon_o on_o our_o behalf_n and_o as_o i_o observe_v before_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o man_n the_o israelite_n be_v baptize_v by_o the_o wor●●_n or_o ministry_n or_o as_o the_o syriack_n have_v it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n but_o not_o in_o his_o name_n before_o we_o leave_v off_o these_o objection_n against_o the_o most_o adorable_a trinity_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o shall_v speak_v some_o few_o word_n more_o for_o indeed_o the_o point_n be_v of_o so_o high_a a_o concernment_n and_o afford_v such_o a_o plenty_n and_o variety_n of_o discourse_n that_o we_o can_v never_o say_v enough_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v know_v in_o the_o case_n though_o as_o we_o say_v they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o essence_n yet_o they_o differ_v first_o in_o personal_a name_n as_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n second_o in_o their_o order_n father_n first_o as_o the_o spring_n than_o son_n three_o holy_a ghost_n three_o in_o their_o manner_n of_o operation_n the_o father_n do_v act_n of_o himself_o the_o son_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o 15.26_o gal._n 4.4_o john_n 14.26_o &_o 15.26_o so_o the_o son_n be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o father_n and_o son_n but_o we_o never_o read_v the_o father_n be_v send_v so_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o outward_a work_n for_o though_o they_o be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n yet_o creation_n be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n redemption_n to_o the_o son_n and_o sanctification_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o these_o three_o person_n have_v every_o one_o their_o personal_a unity_n in_o number_n they_o be_v distinguish_v yet_o be_v but_o one_o god_n in_o number_n of_o essential_a and_o natural_a unity_n wherefore_o in_o god_n be_v not_o three_o being_n three_o infinite_n or_o three_o thing_n yet_o they_o object_n the_o name_n of_o trinity_n personality_n and_o essence_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o the_o apostle_n time_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o first_o that_o though_o the_o name_n be_v not_o yet_o the_o thing_n be_v and_o word_n be_v to_o signify_v thing_n that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o place_n quote_v to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n which_o here_o i_o need_v not_o to_o repeat_v and_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a why_o shall_v man_n dispute_v about_o word_n which_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o prejudice_n the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n on_o the_o contrary_n do_v explain_v and_o confirm_v it_o as_o to_o the_o second_o i_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v mention_v of_o old_a as_o i_o prove_v it_o already_o out_o of_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n concern_v who_o be_v the_o clear_a testimony_n of_o psal_n 2_o who_o come_v as_o jehovah_n and_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o prophet_n speak_v to_o israel_n when_o he_o call_v he_o your_o god_n be_v foretell_v behold_v 11._o isa_n 35_o 4_o 5._o mat._n 11.4_o 5._o psal_n 51.10_o 11._o your_o god_n will_v come_v with_o vengeance_n even_o god_n with_o a_o recompense_n he_o will_v come_v and_o save_v you_o which_o be_v apply_v unto_o christ_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mention_n be_v make_v by_o david_n and_o in_o other_o place_n but_o that_o which_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v under_o a_o veil_n be_v clear_o reveal_v under_o the_o new_a for_o the_o person_n be_v plain_o name_v and_o their_o number_n express_v as_o in_o the_o place_n already_o make_v use_n of_o not_o only_o in_o the_o baptism_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o in_o his_o commission_n give_v his_o apostle_n to_o baptize_v etc._n etc._n which_o as_o i_o show_v be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v do_v in_o any_o man_n name_n as_o there_o be_v truth_n in_o jesus_n so_o this_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n which_o also_o have_v in_o conformity_n thereunto_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o general_a orthodox_n council_n and_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n however_o this_o must_v be_v say_v that_o though_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o exceed_v our_o understanding_n and_o capacity_n again_o they_o say_v in_o most_o place_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o that_o this_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o answer_v the_o name_n god_n when_o proper_o speak_v and_o of_o the_o true_a god_n be_v take_v either_o essential_o for_o divine_a nature_n or_o personalty_n for_o some_o of_o the_o person_n when_o take_v in_o the_o first_o sense_n it_o do_v not_o exclude_v but_o include_v the_o person_n only_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o opposition_n to_o idol_n and_o false_a god_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n the_o thing_n absolute_o speak_v of_o the_o oneness_n of_o god_n do_v not_o at_o all_o prejudice_n the_o person_n which_o be_v that_o only_a god_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o not_o only_o the_o father_n but_o also_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v god_n in_o this_o essential_a sense_n be_v take_v the_o place_n they_o quote_v out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o for_o instance_n 5.21_o mark_v 2.7_o luk._n 5.21_o that_o of_o mark_n and_o of_o luke_n which_o among_o other_o they_o make_v use_v of_o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o the_o word_n god_n belong_v to_o the_o essence_n yet_o that_o power_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o son_n as_o to_o the_o father_n for_o there_o christ_n assume_v it_o to_o himself_o which_o same_o power_n be_v also_o attribute_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 22._o john_n 20.21_o 22._o whosoever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o when_o the_o word_n god_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v personal_o then_o there_o be_v a_o note_n of_o distinction_n join_v to_o know_v what_o person_n be_v speak_v of_o whether_o father_n son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n what_o we_o say_v of_o the_o word_n god_n the_o same_o we_o affirm_v of_o the_o name_n father_n which_o do_v not_o always_o signify_v the_o first_o person_n but_o also_o the_o nature_n and_o three_o person_n thus_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v father_n of_o all_o and_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n we_o call_v he_o our_o father_n when_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n etc._n etc._n in_o all_o text_n of_o that_o nature_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v understand_v as_o to_o the_o particle_n beside_o i_o sometime_o use_v it_o except_v nothing_o within_o though_o every_o thing_n without_o the_o deity_n or_o that_o have_v not_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o one_o of_o the_o argument_n which_o most_o of_o all_o they_o ground_n themselves_o upon_o be_v this_o 17.3_o joh._n 17.3_o and_o this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n they_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n which_o they_o restrain_v only_o to_o the_o father_n but_o herein_o they_o be_v much_o
mistake_v for_o the_o word_n alone_o or_o only_o which_o they_o lie_v the_o stress_n upon_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o subject_a thou_o but_o to_o the_o predicate_a not_o to_o thou_o but_o to_o true_a god_n not_o to_o that_o which_o go_v before_o but_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v after_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o know_v only_o thou_o to_o be_v but_o know_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n this_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o as_o one_o of_o their_o usual_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n our_o saviour_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n who_o scripture_n mention_v namely_o the_o father_n who_o send_v and_o the_o son_n that_o be_v send_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n we_o can_v have_v a_o better_a interpreter_n of_o than_o the_o evangelist_n himself_o 5.20_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o here_o the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v join_v in_o the_o same_o the_o same_o that_o be_v eternal_a life_n be_v also_o the_o true_a god_n only_o eternal_a life_n and_o only_o true_a god_n now_o christ_n be_v call_v true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 10.28_o john_n 10.28_o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o if_o here_o we_o consider_v eternal_a life_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n do_v not_o scripture_n say_v in_o several_a place_n how_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n let_v of_o many_o this_o one_o serve_v for_o all_o i_o give_v unto_o they_o his_o sheep_n eternal_a life_n if_o the_o son_n be_v not_o that_o only_a true_a god_n why_o shall_v he_o join_v himself_o with_o the_o father_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n to_o know_v thou_o and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n this_o be_v the_o true_a order_n of_o the_o word_n whereof_o the_o true_a sense_n be_v resolve_v into_o this_o the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o not_o the_o only_a or_o father_n alone_o be_v the_o true_a god_n the_o word_n in_o the_o original_n be_v not_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o know_v thou_o only_o the_o true_a god_n but_o thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n where_o any_o one_o may_v see_v how_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o pronoun_n thou_o but_o to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o though_o the_o particle_n be_v remove_v yet_o thereby_o christ_n will_v not_o be_v exclude_v for_o the_o true_a god_n be_v say_v as_o i_o already_o observe_v not_o in_o opposition_n to_o christ_n but_o to_o false_a god_n according_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o scripture_n the_o word_n alone_o or_o only_o do_v not_o always_o give_v a_o general_a exclusion_n as_o we_o see_v it_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o jacob_n say_v unto_o reuben_n my_o son_n shall_v not_o go_v down_o with_o you_o 42.38_o gen._n 42.38_o for_o his_o brother_n be_v dead_a and_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o mother_n side_n and_o not_o by_o the_o father_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v his_o brethren_n and_o in_o the_o new_a in_o the_o transfiguration_n 9.36_o luk._n 9.36_o it_o be_v say_v and_o when_o the_o voice_n be_v past_o jesus_n be_v leave_v alone_o certain_o peter_n james_n and_o john_n be_v not_o exclude_v for_o they_o be_v with_o he_o but_o moses_n and_o elias_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v take_v martha_n word_n to_o our_o saviour_n lord_n do_v thou_o not_o care_n that_o my_o sister_n have_v leave_v i_o to_o serve_v alone_o 10.40_o luk._n 10.40_o only_o mean_v of_o mary_n and_o not_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o house_n and_o to_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o hand_n let_v it_o be_v know_v that_o scripture_n never_o say_v the_o father_n only_o be_v the_o true_a god_n though_o it_o say_v the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n so_o be_v the_o son_n and_o so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o christ_n will_v not_o deny_v himself_o the_o honour_n of_o be_v the_o true_a god_n which_o in_o other_o place_n he_o attribute_n unto_o himself_o for_o the_o two_o word_n alone_a and_o true_a go_v with_o god_n not_o with_o thou_o and_o his_o meaning_n be_v how_o true_a eternal_a life_n consist_v in_o this_o 8.6_o gal._n 4.8_o 1_o thes_n 1.9_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o that_o man_n may_v detest_v idol_n and_o false_a god_n and_o be_v convert_v to_o thou_o o_o father_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n by_o nature_n which_o idol_n be_v not_o thus_o when_o the_o name_n one_o lord_n be_v give_v the_o son_n it_o be_v not_o to_o exclude_v the_o father_n who_o also_o be_v lord_n and_o the_o name_n spirit_n give_v the_o three_o person_n do_v not_o exclude_v father_n or_o son_n who_o also_o be_v spirit_n so_o this_o text_n do_v admit_v of_o the_o same_o construction_n as_o this_o when_o paul_n say_v 9.6_o 1_o cor._n 9.6_o i_o only_o and_o barnabas_n have_v we_o not_o power_n to_o forbear_v work_v where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o barnabas_n far_o from_o be_v exclude_v be_v join_v and_o include_v in_o the_o same_o power_n with_o paul_n and_o here_o the_o thing_n require_v it_o see_v eternal_a life_n be_v make_v to_o consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o the_o father_n wherefore_o both_o be_v equal_o say_v to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n those_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o know_v better_a than_o god_n himself_o what_o become_v his_o glory_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o any_o thing_n like_a to_o favour_v their_o notion_n wherefore_o because_o it_o be_v say_v god_n have_v appoint_v his_o son_n heir_n of_o all_o thing_n 5.22_o heb._n 1.2_o john_n 5.22_o and_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o he_o with_o other_o thing_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n they_o with_o the_o jew_n do_v therewith_o entangle_v themselves_o and_o form_v this_o argument_n it_o can_v consist_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n to_o be_v appoint_v heir_n by_o any_o one_o but_o god_n have_v appoint_v his_o son_n heir_n of_o all_o thing_n therefore_o his_o son_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n nor_o the_o most_o high_a god_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o say_v first_o that_o the_o person_n of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o his_o father_n but_o the_o same_o dignity_n nature_n and_o authority_n he_o have_v as_o already_o demonstrate_v common_a with_o the_o father_n he_o be_v not_o make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o nature_n for_o he_o be_v such_o of_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o right_a and_o inheritance_n not_o by_o favour_n but_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n of_o mediator_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o god_n and_o man_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n be_v all_o judgement_n commit_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o father_n but_o otherwise_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o most_o high_a but_o second_o this_o argument_n contain_v two_o branch_n which_o before_o i_o have_v speak_v about_o yet_o to_o what_o have_v already_o be_v say_v this_o i_o shall_v add_v to_o the_o first_o part_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n jesus_n above_o 3400_o year_n before_o his_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 5.31_o numb_a 24.17_o micah_n 5.2_o luk._n 2.32_o john_n 1.49_o act_n 5.31_o be_v call_v the_o star_n of_o jacob_n and_o the_o sceptre_n of_o israel_n and_o long_o after_o the_o ruler_n in_o israel_n after_o his_o birth_n the_o glory_n of_o israel_n and_o after_o his_o baptism_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n which_o in_o that_o sense_n and_o place_n be_v as_o good_a as_o god_n of_o israel_n as_o indeed_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n for_o to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n as_o to_o the_o other_o part_n that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o most_o high_a god_n we_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n take_v notice_n how_o they_o set_v up_o a_o high_a god_n that_o be_v christ_n and_o a_o most_o high_a god_n the_o father_n which_o be_v by_o such_o a_o comparative_a difference_n to_o make_v two_o god_n and_o they_o will_v have_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a not_o to_o be_v high_a himself_o as_o to_o essence_n and_o power_n the_o word_n most_o high_a or_o high_a be_v a_o hebraism_n for_o in_o that_o language_n god_n be_v call_v helion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v supreme_a whence_o the_o greek_n borrow_v the_o name_n they_o call_v the_o sun_n by_o because_o the_o chief_a of_o all_o star_n and_o planet_n
find_v alive_a at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o will_v have_v christ_n incarnation_n to_o be_v against_o reason_n and_o scripture_n they_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v true_o god_n the_o like_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o there_o be_v in_o one_o god_n no_o trinity_n of_o person_n and_o that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v needless_a for_o christian_n etc._n etc._n all_o these_o and_o other_o blasphemy_n be_v find_v in_o the_o work_v of_o socinus_n in_o the_o racovian_a catechism_n whereof_o smalcius_n be_v the_o author_n of_o ostorodius_n crellius_n wolkelius_fw-la vaydovius_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n insist_v only_o upon_o some_o of_o their_o great_a blasphemy_n now_o to_o the_o cause_n matter_n of_o this_o high_a nature_n and_o fundamental_a concernment_n to_o our_o holy_a religion_n must_v not_o be_v prostitute_v to_o the_o captious_a scan_n of_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n nor_o the_o way_n of_o god_n be_v make_v layable_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n rather_o humble_o to_o be_v adore_v with_o submission_n of_o mind_n and_o obedience_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o revelation_n declare_v in_o god_n word_n and_o herein_o we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o be_v sober_a and_o cautious_a that_o we_o know_v error_n to_o be_v link_v together_o and_o to_o have_v a_o dependency_n one_o upon_o another_o he_o that_o strike_v at_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v afterward_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o fly_v out_o against_o his_o person_n he_o who_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n will_v soon_o disow_v he_o to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o a_o priest_n for_o as_o one_o depth_n call_v to_o another_o so_o a_o arminian_n can_v easy_o become_v a_o rank_a pelagian_a and_o socinian_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a at_o the_o very_a beginning_n to_o oppose_v error_n defend_v every_o inch_n of_o ground_n against_o such_o as_o will_v daily_o grow_v worse_a and_o worse_o as_o do_v the_o 1.8_o the_o james_n 1.8_o double-minded_n man_n that_o be_v for_o their_o own_o more_o than_o for_o the_o truth_n be_v interest_n for_o they_o be_v unstable_a in_o all_o their_o way_n and_o the_o more_o hand_n orderly_o employ_v the_o better_a be_v the_o effect_v like_a to_o be_v this_o consideration_n make_v i_o to_o appear_v among_o those_o who_o heretofore_o do_v and_o now_o do_v oppose_v false_a teacher_n who_o not_o only_o privy_o but_o also_o in_o public_a bring_v in_o again_o those_o damnable_a heresy_n which_o of_o old_a truth_n and_o learning_n explode_v and_o baffle_v out_o of_o the_o world_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o stumbling-block_n to_o the_o jew_n who_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o hear_v he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n absolute_o and_o without_o limitation_n and_o thereat_o be_v enrage_v which_o make_v they_o take_v up_o stone_n to_o cast_v at_o he_o john_n 8.59_o and_o also_o at_o another_o time_n chap._n 10.31_o the_o doctrine_n about_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o the_o person_n and_o deity_n of_o christ_n do_v stand_v and_o fall_v together_o in_o our_o saviour_n time_n it_o begin_v to_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o since_o from_o time_n to_o time_n continue_v to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o devil_n instrument_n raise_v to_o that_o same_o purpose_n and_o within_o the_o last_o age_n revive_v by_o the_o forenamed_a blasphemer_n against_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v build_v on_o the_o confession_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n not_o by_o any_o special_a favour_n or_o any_o such_o restriction_n for_o then_o there_o will_v be_v only_o a_o gradual_a difference_n between_o he_o and_o our_o be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o he_o be_v simple_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yea_o his_o only_a beget_v before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o important_a matter_n some_o thing_n to_o clear_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n must_v be_v premise_v so_o that_o we_o must_v show_v wherein_o we_o agree_v before_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o wherein_o we_o differ_v as_o to_o the_o first_o this_o foundation_n must_v be_v lay_v there_o be_v a_o god_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o effect_n of_o none_o who_o have_v make_v all_o and_o be_v make_v by_o none_o who_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n their_o be_v and_o have_v his_o own_o of_o himself_o this_o be_v not_o deny_v so_o i_o shall_v not_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v it_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n do_v sufficient_o convince_v man_n of_o it_o the_o next_o thing_n be_v what_o god_n be_v he_o be_v infinite_a can_v be_v define_v but_o imperfect_o describe_v only_o according_a to_o what_o he_o have_v in_o his_o word_n reveal_v of_o himself_o how_o he_o be_v infinite_a independent_a self-sufficient_a eternal_a unchangeable_a but_o such_o be_v the_o blindness_n of_o some_o man_n judgement_n or_o the_o perverseness_n of_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o will_v cavil_v at_o the_o nature_n name_n attribute_n and_o work_v of_o this_o eternal_a and_o infinite_a be_v but_o about_o this_o fundamental_a truth_n our_o faith_n must_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o revelation_n which_o god_n have_v make_v of_o it_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n herein_o man_n must_v not_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n for_o 〈…〉_o for_o 〈◊〉_d mat._n 〈…〉_o no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o now_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o revelation_n in_o the_o word_n be_v that_o god_n be_v one_o that_o this_o one_o god_n be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o father_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o that_o they_o be_v distinct_a one_o from_o another_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o their_o mutual_a relation_n by_o this_o rule_n we_o must_v be_v guide_v how_o to_o know_v believe_v worship_n love_n fear_v and_o obey_v he_o that_o be_v the_o father_n one_o true_a god_n the_o son_n one_o true_a god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o true_a god_n to_o be_v believe_v worship_a and_o obey_v now_o for_o our_o edification_n and_o further_a instruction_n th●●_n doctrine_n admit_v of_o some_o enlargement_n and_o explanation_n to_o prevent_v undue_a notion_n of_o god_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n we_o be_v natural_o involve_v in_o our_o mind_n be_v liable_a unto_o thus_o out_o of_o the_o revelation_n that_o god_n be_v one_o we_o easy_o deduce_v he_o be_v so_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o nature_n essence_n or_o godhead_n and_o how_o being_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n he_o do_v subsist_v in_o these_o three_o distinct_a person_n thence_o also_o be_v derive_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o subsistence_n what_o be_v their_o mutual_a respect_n to_o each_o other_o and_o such_o like_a thing_n by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o the_o revelation_n upon_o these_o ground_n be_v compile_v the_o nicene_n athanasian_n and_o other_o creed_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o heresy_n of_o those_o time_n for_o therein_o be_v explain_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n about_o those_o matter_n which_o be_v wrest_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o though_o the_o orthodox_n doctor_n and_o council_n to_o oppose_v the_o error_n and_o lay_v open_a the_o venom_n make_v use_v of_o some_o word_n and_o expression_n which_o in_o so_o many_o letter_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o to_o blame_v for_o they_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o it_o by_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n man_n may_v lawful_o conceive_v in_o their_o mind_n what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n according_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o also_o as_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n or_o else_o we_o be_v no_o better_a than_o brute_n so_o that_o if_o the_o chief_a assertion_n contain_v in_o the_o revelation_n be_v true_a so_o must_v also_o be_v whatsoever_o be_v therein_o include_v and_o in_o the_o explication_n thereof_o draw_v by_o a_o true_a and_o right_a consequence_n wherefore_o see_v god_n have_v declare_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v one_o god_n it_o necessary_o follow_v they_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n because_o therein_o only_o they_o can_v be_v one_o and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o any_o other_o unity_n and_o see_v it_o be_v also_o declare_v they_o be_v three_o it_o must_v be_v explain_v of_o three_o distinct_a person_n or_o subsistence_n wherein_o only_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o can_v be_v three_o the_o revelation_n be_v clear_a there_o be_v one_o god_n this_o god_n be_v
the_o angel_n no_o less_o than_o twice_o do_v direct_v to_o the_o true_a and_o only_a object_n of_o worship_n when_o he_o say_v 22.9_o say_v rev._n 19.10_o and_o 22.9_o worship_n god_n but_o this_o belong_v to_o another_o head_n i_o now_o shall_v proceed_v no_o far_o in_o it_o now_o to_o remove_v all_o improper_a and_o figurative_a meaning_n when_o the_o word_n god_n be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o prove_v his_o consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n scripture_n set_v down_o name_n and_o epithet_n which_o not_o only_o distinguish_v he_o from_o and_o raise_v he_o above_o all_o and_o every_o creature_n but_o also_o make_v he_o equal_a with_o god_n the_o father_n thus_o he_o be_v call_v 5.20_o call_v 1_o john_n 5.20_o the_o true_a god_n and_o 19.17_o and_o tit._n 2.13_o re._n 19.17_o the_o great_a god_n so_o 9.5_o so_o rom._n 9.5_o god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o also_o 4._o also_o judas_n 4._o the_o only_a lord_n god_n etc._n etc._n hence_o the_o name_n jehovah_n be_v joint_o equal_o and_o comparative_o give_v unto_o the_o son_n as_o 12._o as_o psal_n 2.11_o 12._o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n etc._n etc._n and_o 25.9_o and_o isai_n 25.9_o this_o be_v our_o god_n we_o have_v wait_v for_o he_o and_o he_o will_v save_v we_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n we_o have_v wait_v for_o he_o we_o will_v rejoice_v in_o his_o salvation_n now_o comparative_o or_o in_o a_o parallel_n christ_n be_v the_o same_o 14._o same_o isai_n 8.13_o 14._o lord_n of_o host_n which_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o sanctuary_n a_o stone_n of_o stumble_v and_o for_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n to_o both_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o confirm_v 9.32_o confirm_v luke_n 2.34_o and_o rom._n 9.32_o christ_n be_v he_o who_o be_v by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n exalt_v and_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n shed_v forth_o those_o gift_n we_o read_v of_o 2.3.4.33_o of_o act._n 2.3.4.33_o and_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n unquestionable_o the_o true_a god_n that_o promise_v 2.28_o promise_v joel_n 2.28_o in_o the_o last_o day_n to_o pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v the_o same_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v the_o same_o who_o be_v first_o and_o last_o compare_v 44.6_o compare_v isai_n 44.6_o isaiah_n with_o s._n john_n 1.17_o john_n rev._n 1.17_o the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v 16._o say_v isai_n 48.12_o 16._o he_o be_v send_v from_o the_o lord_n god_n and_o from_o his_o spirit_n after_o he_o have_v say_v v._o 12._o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o also_o be_o the_o last_o so_o the_o title_n proper_a to_o the_o true_a god_n be_v give_v christ_n as_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n as_o by_o god_n grace_n we_o shall_v show_v when_o we_o speak_v about_o the_o attribute_n so_o then_o the_o son_n be_v true_a god_n as_o we_o observe_v before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d son_n of_o himself_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o son_n simple_o and_o without_o relation_n to_o the_o father_n we_o proper_o call_v he_o jehovah_n and_o self_n be_v for_o he_o have_v it_o of_o himself_o but_o when_o consider_v relative_o to_o the_o father_n than_o we_o say_v he_o have_v his_o be_v from_o the_o father_n the_o son_n be_v by_o himself_o not_o of_o himself_o his_o essence_n have_v no_o spring_n but_o his_o person_n be_v from_o the_o father_n the_o essence_n be_v not_o communicate_v to_o the_o son_n but_o only_o the_o manner_n of_o subsist_v in_o the_o essence_n when_o the_o son_n be_v call_v god_n personal_o than_o he_o be_v not_o call_v the_o manner_n of_o subsist_v but_o a_o existence_n with_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v now_o the_o modus_fw-la or_o manner_n be_v understand_v with_o the_o essence_n because_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o divinity_n be_v not_o divinity_n itself_o so_o the_o mode_n of_o essence_n be_v not_o essence_n itself_o thus_o when_o he_o be_v call_v god_n personal_o it_o be_v in_o the_o concrete_a not_o in_o the_o abstract_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n he_o be_v not_o true_a god_n for_o nothing_o be_v real_o such_o but_o what_o be_v so_o by_o nature_n the_o adversary_n say_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o comparative_o be_v call_v such_o in_o scripture_n be_v true_o such_o as_o christ_n be_v call_v 18.1_o call_v joh._n 1.9_o chap._n 18.1_o the_o true_a light_n and_o the_o true_a vine_n though_o he_o be_v so_o call_v by_o way_n of_o a_o metaphor_n but_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v how_o sometime_o the_o name_n true_a be_v appropriate_v to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v so_o call_v metaphorical_o but_o then_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o metaphor_n do_v not_o real_o belong_v to_o they_o for_o in_o every_o metaphor_n there_o be_v true_a and_o false_a in_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o thus_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o true_a light_n for_o though_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a way_n he_o be_v a_o light_n that_o be_v spiritual_o work_v the_o same_o effect_n as_o a_o corporal_a light_n do_v bodily_a in_o the_o like_a manner_n he_o be_v call_v a_o true_a vine_n because_o that_o the_o metaphor_n be_v true_o proper_a to_o he_o but_o here_o the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o the_o truth_n of_o word_n take_v metaphorical_o but_o proper_o for_o when_o the_o word_n true_a be_v join_v to_o those_o that_o be_v proper_o take_v than_o it_o signify_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n so_o when_o the_o word_n true_a be_v join_v with_o that_o of_o god_n it_o necessary_o signify_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o whensoever_o the_o name_n of_o true_a god_n be_v give_v any_o thing_n thereby_o be_v divine_a nature_n attribute_v to_o it_o this_o show_v how_o socinian_n do_v not_o own_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n because_o according_a to_o scripture_n there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a god_n they_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v that_o only_o true_a god_n when_o god_n be_v call_v the_o only_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o only_a true_a god_n it_o be_v not_o say_v only_o by_o way_n of_o excellency_n as_o compare_v god_n with_o the_o creature_n but_o we_o thereby_o exclude_v all_o other_o for_o in_o those_o place_n the_o only_a true_a god_n be_v oppose_v to_o false_a god_n in_o relation_n to_o which_o he_o be_v not_o call_v true_a by_o way_n of_o eminency_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n for_o they_o be_v true_a god_n by_o no_o mean_n and_o the_o true_a god_n be_v ever_o oppose_v to_o false_a god_n and_o idol_n wherefore_o call_v the_o live_a god_n 36.9_o psal_n 36.9_o because_o say_v david_n with_o thou_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n he_o that_o be_v god_n only_o by_o participation_n and_o not_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o true_a god_n for_o participation_n do_v import_v a_o likeness_n but_o likeness_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v never_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o if_o they_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n only_o by_o participation_n this_o in_o effect_n be_v to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n that_o be_v to_o make_v he_o a_o improper_a and_o metaphorical_a god_n and_o after_o that_o way_n man_n and_o angel_n may_v be_v call_v true_a god_n which_o be_v not_o only_a folly_n but_o also_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v and_o think_v but_o they_o say_v if_o god_n and_o angel_n be_v not_o true_a god_n than_o god_n do_v mock_v when_o he_o call_v they_o so_o but_o it_o be_v no_o mockery_n to_o give_v one_o some_o name_n in_o a_o improper_a and_o figurative_a sense_n or_o else_o when_o christ_n call_v his_o apostle_n 14._o apostle_n matth._n 5.13_o 14._o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o city_n that_o be_v set_v on_o a_o hill_n he_o will_v have_v mock_v too_o so_o will_v paul_n call_v 2.20_o call_v 1_o cor._n 3.11_o and_o eph._n 2.20_o christ_n a_o foundation_n and_o a_o chief_a corner_n stone_n see_v the_o apostle_n be_v not_o true_a light_n only_o improper_o and_o metaphorical_o and_o christ_n a_o stone_n figurative_o they_o that_o be_v god_n only_o by_o likeness_n and_o communication_n and_o not_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n every_o thing_n be_v call_v true_a as_o i_o hint_v before_o according_a to_o its_o nature_n a_o true_a man_n true_a gold_n true_a silver_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n gold_n and_o silver_n now_o as_o to_o christ_n can_v he_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o true_a god_n who_o first_o have_v a_o be_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n and_o be_v not_o god_n then_o be_v god_n and_o like_o the_o popish_a wafer_n god_n by_o degree_n be_v god_n more_o and_o more_o till_o he_o come_v to_o a_o perfection_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o we_o may_v say_v be_v
it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o person_n shall_v make_v several_a god_n different_a in_o number_n and_o nature_n second_o we_o say_v where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o use_v it_o do_v not_o always_o as_o the_o heretic_n will_v have_v it_o signify_v the_o name_n of_o one_o of_o the_o person_n but_o sometime_o the_o person_n and_o sometime_o the_o nature_n and_o herein_o lay_v their_o mistake_n that_o they_o suppose_v the_o name_n of_o god_n ever_o to_o be_v take_v personal_o and_o the_o comparison_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o mistake_n for_o the_o infinite_a essence_n be_v not_o multiply_v as_o the_o finite_a now_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o the_o person_n either_o something_o be_v add_v which_o give_v a_o notion_n of_o the_o person_n as_o when_o god_n be_v say_v 20.28_o say_v act._n 20.28_o to_o have_v purchase_v the_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n which_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o son_n or_o else_o the_o person_n be_v compare_v among_o themselves_o and_o then_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n for_o because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o spring_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o order_n and_o origin_n of_o the_o person_n so_o in_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v by_o excellency_n attribute_v to_o the_o father_n especial_o where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o mediator_n for_o whensoever_o christ_n speak_v himself_o or_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o and_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n he_o retain_v a_o middle_a degree_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o then_o by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v the_o father_n three_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v put_v instead_o of_o one_o person_n and_o it_o signify_v one_o father_n then_o be_v thereby_o understand_v the_o godhead_n which_o be_v common_a to_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v author_n and_o maker_n of_o all_o creature_n for_o though_o the_o son_n do_v exercise_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o thereby_o lose_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o divinity_n with_o the_o father_n neither_o be_v his_o essence_n inferior_a or_o secondary_a to_o the_o father_n or_o his_o godhead_n essentiate_v four_o when_o god_n name_n without_o any_o personal_a attribute_n or_o comparison_n of_o one_o person_n with_o the_o other_o be_v simple_o indefinite_o and_o absolute_o use_v than_o it_o signify_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o essence_n which_o be_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n one_o god_n beside_o in_o these_o text_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v mention_v in_o opposition_n to_o false_a god_n or_o creature_n it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n only_o but_o be_v indefinite_o speak_v of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o instance_n if_o when_o the_o law_n command_v to_o adore_v one_o god_n the_o father_n alone_o and_o not_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o son_n who_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v be_v another_o god_n likewise_o when_o god_n call_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n he_o by_o this_o mark_n distinguish_v himself_o from_o all_o false_a god_n how_o then_o may_v it_o be_v say_v of_o one_o personal_a one_o whether_o father_n or_o son_n 7.22_o son_n 2_o sam._n 7.22_o who_o be_v great_a as_o thou_o be_v who_o be_v like_a unto_o thou_o for_o several_a of_o the_o arian_n who_o deny_v the_o consubstantiality_n or_o the_o sameness_n of_o nature_n yet_o own_v a_o likeness_n between_o father_n and_o son_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n where_o god_n name_n be_v absolute_o take_v often_o it_o add_v a_o universal_a negative_a or_o exclusive_a but_o if_o the_o name_n of_o god_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o father_n and_o if_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o saviour_n and_o one_o nature_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v exclude_v from_o thing_n attribute_v unto_o god_n for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a god_n and_o saviour_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n beside_o and_o without_o he_o moreover_o see_v the_o father_n alone_o be_v one_o god_n and_o they_o own_o also_o the_o son_n to_o be_v god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n though_o not_o that_o one_o god_n than_o it_o follow_v there_o be_v three_o god_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n these_o thing_n be_v premise_v do_v afford_v matter_n of_o answer_n to_o their_o sophistical_a cavil_n against_o this_o truth_n and_o so_o show_v how_o the_o word_n god_n absolute_o use_v in_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o of_o the_o father_n but_o also_o of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n whence_o also_o appear_v the_o mystery_n of_o these_o doctrine_n one_o with_o another_o and_o they_o be_v so_o twist_v that_o they_o stand_v or_o fall_v together_o so_o no_o wonder_n if_o under_o one_o head_n we_o say_v something_n belong_v to_o and_o speak_v of_o in_o another_o here_o they_o form_n thus_o a_o argument_n against_o we_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o the_o israelite_n ever_o adore_v be_v that_o one_o god_n who_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o but_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o one_o god_n mention_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o he_o be_v that_o one_o god_n but_o the_o argument_n conclude_v nothing_o against_o we_o we_o altogether_o grant_v it_o the_o father_n be_v the_o one_o god_n of_o israel_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v another_o god_n another_o nature_n in_o the_o father_n than_o that_o same_o which_o law_n and_o prophet_n call_v the_o only_a god_n and_o god_n alone_o and_o we_o on_o our_o part_n do_v argue_v thus_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v one_o god_n but_o christ_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o father_n and_o by_o who_o spirit_n the_o prophet_n be_v inspire_v speak_v therefore_o christ_n be_v that_o only_a god_n for_o there_o be_v in_o christ_n no_o other_o godhead_n no_o other_o divine_a nature_n than_o what_o be_v in_o the_o father_n as_o the_o father_n be_v one_o so_o be_v the_o son_n one_o god_n and_o both_o together_o be_v one_o god_n in_o nature_n but_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o their_o argument_n be_v that_o of_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n only_o the_o father_n not_o the_o son_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n than_o we_o deny_v their_o minor_a proposition_n for_o out_o of_o scripture_n the_o son_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o they_o adore_v for_o not_o only_o under_o the_o name_n of_o god_n they_o adore_v the_o messiah_n who_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v god_n but_o even_o they_o make_v a_o distinct_a mention_n of_o he_o in_o their_o prayer_n as_o we_o read_v when_o jacob_n bless_v joseph_n child_n god_n before_o who_o my_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n do_v walk_v the_o god_n which_o feed_v i_o all_o my_o life_n time_n to_o this_o day_n 3_o the_o angel_n which_o redeem_v i_o from_o all_o evil_a bless_v these_o lad_n and_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o true_a ancient_a jew_n for_o as_o to_o those_o that_o believe_v not_o when_o our_o saviour_n himself_o speak_v to_o they_o who_o own_v only_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n for_o their_o god_n we_o may_v say_v they_o know_v not_o the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o true_a manner_n see_v 14.6_o see_v joh._n 14.6_o none_o come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n and_o 11._o and_o mat._n 11._o none_o 〈◊〉_d the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d veal_n he_o wherefore_o since_o they_o reject_v the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d want_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o father_n and_o 〈◊〉_d stead_n of_o god_n the_o father_n they_o adore_v the_o idol_n 〈◊〉_d their_o own_o heart_n wherefore_o when_o jesus_n say_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 8.44_o 〈◊〉_d matt._n 8.44_o if_o i_o honour_v myself_o my_o glory_n be_v nothing_o it_o be_v my_o father_n that_o honour_v i_o who_o you_o say_v to_o be_v your_o god_n he_o upbraid_v they_o with_o their_o vainglory_n who_o boast_v to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o false_o by_o reason_n they_o own_v he_o not_o to_o be_v god_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n against_o their_o aspersion_n he_o assert_v his_o glory_n because_o they_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o very_o much_o below_o abraham_n and_o other_o patriarch_n he_o in_o his_o capacity_n of_o mediator_n and_o as_o a_o man_n own_v a_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o god_n who_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o he_o often_o mention_v his_o father_n to_o the_o end_n
in_o this_o comparison_n of_o person_n all_o thing_n may_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o but_o hence_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n see_v they_o be_v not_o compare_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o essen●●_n but_o herein_o he_o do_v condescend_v to_o their_o capacity_n who_o not_o own_v his_o deity_n he_o will_v by_o degree_n bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o as_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n the_o remain_a evidence_n be_v reduce_v under_o two_o kind_n first_o in_o some_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o take_v for_o god_n the_o father_n second_o in_o other_o be_v add_v a_o exclusive_a particle_n which_o be_v by_o some_o join_v with_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o by_o other_o with_o the_o thing_n speak_v of_o and_o attribute_v unto_o god_n out_o of_o the_o first_o nothing_o may_v be_v deduce_v contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n for_o in_o all_o those_o place_n by_o they_o quote_v which_o anon_o we_o shall_v mention_v be_v a_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n wherein_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o order_n and_o origin_n but_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o say_v that_o in_o every_o place_n where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_o take_v that_o be_v without_o comparison_n of_o the_o person_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o father_n for_o in_o several_a place_n where_o the_o word_n god_n be_v indefinite_o set_v down_o yet_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o father_n alone_o as_o to_o the_o other_o sort_n of_o proof_n wherein_o a_o exclusive_a particle_n be_v express_v that_o exclusive_a particle_n relate_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o to_o every_o thing_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n whither_o they_o be_v thing_n in_o nature_n as_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n which_o heathen_n worship_v as_o god_n or_o else_o those_o which_o be_v effect_n of_o man_n fancy_n and_o imagination_n such_o be_v several_a idol_n by_o foolish_a man_n worship_v as_o god_n wherefore_o see_v the_o true_a and_o essential_a god_n be_v oppose_v to_o those_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o by_o the_o word_n god_n may_v well_o be_v understand_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n likewise_o though_o sometime_o mention_v be_v make_v only_o of_o one_o person_n we_o must_v not_o take_v it_o as_o if_o thereby_o the_o other_o person_n be_v exclude_v but_o only_o that_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o right_a interpretation_n it_o may_v well_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o instance_n when_o god_n say_v by_o 43.11_o by_o isa_n 43.11_o the_o prophet_n i_o even_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o beside_o i_o there_o be_v no_o saviour_n and_o by_o another_o 13.4_o another_o hos_fw-la 13.4_o for_o there_o be_v no_o saviour_n beside_o i_o here_o in_o the_o adversary_n opinion_n salvation_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o father_n but_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o exclude_v it_o appear_v out_o of_o several_a place_n among_o the_o rest_n out_o of_o this_o 4.12.10_o this_o act._n 4.12.10_o neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o we_o know_v scripture_n do_v not_o contradict_v itself_o and_o if_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n one_o will_v exclude_v the_o son_n he_o may_v as_o well_o out_o of_o this_o exclude_v the_o father_n again_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n now_o if_o all_o but_o the_o son_n be_v exclude_v from_o know_v the_o father_n as_o in_o the_o forego_n text_n he_o will_v be_v exclude_v from_o be_v a_o saviour_n so_o in_o this_o from_o know_v himself_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v be_v exclude_v from_o know_v the_o father_n though_o he_o be_v say_v to_o 2.10_o to_o 1_o cor._n 2.10_o search_v all_o thing_n yea_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n in_o this_o very_a same_o sense_n paul_n say_v 10._o say_v chap._n 2.1_o 10._o i_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o you_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v he_o do_v not_o thereby_o deny_v that_o he_o determine_v to_o know_v the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o mean_v he_o know_v nor_o own_v no_o way_n of_o salvation_n out_o of_o christ_n and_o v._o ●1_n the_o thing_n of_o god_n know_v no_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o in_o other_o place_n we_o read_v how_o 5.20_o how_o joh._n 5.20_o the_o father_n know_v the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n know_v the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n show_v the_o son_n all_o thing_n that_o himself_o do_v hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v how_o the_o apostle_n speak_v exclusive_o only_a of_o creature_n not_o of_o the_o son_n nor_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n chap._n vi_o christ_n be_v true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n by_o eternal_a generation_n but_o we_o must_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n come_v to_o another_o head_n as_o scripture_n give_v christ_n true_o proper_o and_o essential_o the_o name_n of_o god_n so_o it_o do_v give_v he_o that_o of_o son_n of_o god_n the_o first_o we_o show_v already_o the_o second_o whereby_o he_o be_v declare_v the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n we_o must_v now_o speak_v of_o as_o we_o observe_v that_o the_o word_n god_n in_o scripture_n be_v speak_v in_o several_a sense_n as_o the_o true_a god_n proper_o angel_n and_o magistrate_n improper_o and_o 46._o and_o judg._n 9.2_o l._n 46._o idol_n 4.4_o idol_n 2_o cor._n 4.4_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o 3.19_o the_o phil._n 3.19_o belly_n abusive_o so_o here_o i_o must_v say_v how_o the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n admit_v of_o three_o different_a signification_n for_o god_n have_v three_o sort_n of_o son_n for_o all_o other_o be_v reduce_v under_o these_o three_o head_n the_o first_o be_v by_o creation_n and_o preservation_n which_o be_v a_o continue_a creation_n for_o 17.28_o for_o act._n 17.28_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v thus_o adam_n be_v call_v 3.38_o call_v luke_n 3.38_o son_n of_o god_n and_o man_n 6.2_o man_n gen._n 6.2_o son_n of_o god_n on_o this_o account_n god_n be_v father_n of_o all_o creature_n whether_o in_o heaven_n as_o angel_n nay_o of_o the_o sun_n moon_n star_n of_o the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n and_o on_o earth_n of_o all_o man_n beast_n plant_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o fish_n under_o water_n this_o in_o relation_n to_o nature_n and_o in_o general_a to_o the_o whole_a creation_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o god_n son_n or_o child_n be_v by_o adoption_n and_o grace_n such_o be_v his_o elect_n and_o people_n of_o these_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n god_n be_v call_v the_o father_n in_o a_o three_o way_n scripture_n speak_v of_o a_o son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o none_o else_o thus_o the_o only_o beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n namely_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v not_o son_n according_a to_o the_o first_o manner_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n will_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o other_o and_o bring_v he_o into_o a_o crowd_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o creation_n neither_o be_v he_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o grace_n and_o adoption_n which_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v but_o if_o he_o be_v by_o adoption_n how_o can_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n see_v that_o through_o grace_n god_n have_v adopt_v so_o many_o adopt_v son_n once_o and_o before_o their_o adoption_n be_v not_o son_n of_o god_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o the_o time_n have_v be_v when_o he_o be_v not_o son_n of_o god_n all_o and_o every_o adopt_a son_n of_o god_n be_v once_o 2._o once_o ephes_n 2._o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o by_o nature_n child_n of_o wrath_n even_o as_o other_o once_o 1.13_o once_o colos_n 1.13_o under_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n and_o 5.10_o and_o rom._n 5.10_o enemy_n to_o god_n none_o of_o which_o thing_n may_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v speak_v or_o think_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v call_v son_n not_o by_o creation_n for_o 1.16_o for_o colos_n 1.16_o all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o one_o can_v be_v creator_n and_o creature_n nor_o by_o adoption_n for_o 1.5_o for_o ephes_n 1.5_o in_o he_o we_o be_v adopt_v nor_o by_o any_o dignity_n or_o eminency_n over_o inferior_a creature_n as_o be_v angel_n for_o the_o 5._o the_o heb._n 1.4_o 5._o apostle_n deny_v it_o nor_o also_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o personal_a union_n or_o incarnation_n as_o he_o be_v call_v son_n
word_n and_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o he_o discourse_v with_o what_o can_v in_o so_o serious_a a_o matter_n and_o of_o so_o high_a a_o concernment_n as_o this_o be_v to_o make_v he_o alter_v his_o method_n and_o differ_v from_o himself_o when_o his_o main_a design_n be_v all_o along_o to_o make_v himself_o true_o know_v for_o what_o he_o be_v yet_o here_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v they_o make_v he_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o jew_n question_n and_o objection_n as_o they_o attempt_v to_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o divinity_n so_o they_o will_v of_o that_o heavenly_a wisdom_n gentleness_n and_o readiness_n to_o do_v good_a which_o ever_o appear_v in_o his_o whole_a carriage_n here_o not_o only_o they_o make_v he_o not_o to_o speak_v pertinent_o to_o the_o question_n but_o also_o they_o so_o mangle_v his_o answer_n that_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o to_o make_v of_o it_o be_v the_o etymology_n or_o derivation_n of_o abraham_n name_n to_o any_o purpose_n here_o the_o jew_n look_v upon_o it_o as_o very_o absurd_a that_o christ_n so_o young_a shall_v have_v be_v in_o abraham_n time_n the_o lord_n do_v plain_o and_o to_o the_o purpose_n answer_n before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o and_o with_o this_o very_a strong_a asseveration_n by_o he_o use_v only_o in_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a concernment_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o not_o once_o but_o twice_o very_o now_o we_o know_v he_o to_o be_v 3.14_o be_v rev._n 3.14_o amen_o amen_n the_o true_a and_o faithful_a witness_n their_o brain_n be_v fruitful_a in_o idle_a invention_n for_o upon_o this_o place_n they_o say_v one_o thing_n more_o wherein_o arminian_n join_v with_o they_o how_o this_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o divine_a constitution_n or_o pre-ordination_a that_o be_v in_o the_o foresight_n and_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n christ_n be_v before_o abraham_n but_o not_o real_o so_o in_o existence_n but_o christ_n here_o say_v not_o he_o be_v fore-ordained_n but_o that_o he_o be_v and_o exi_v i_o be_o we_o deny_v not_o christ_n to_o have_v be_v fore-ordained_n for_o 1.20_o for_o 1_o pet._n 1.20_o peter_n say_v he_o be_v but_o we_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o divinity_n or_o that_o in_o this_o place_n christ_n say_v so_o when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o his_o deity_n be_v preordained_n of_o god_n be_v no_o prerogative_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v 8.29_o be_v rom._n 8.29_o common_a to_o all_o believer_n be_v it_o not_o ridiculous_a for_o one_o to_o say_v he_o be_v old_a than_o other_o because_o he_o be_v fore-ordained_n of_o god_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v this_o i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o one_o thing_n more_o i_o must_v say_v to_o it_o how_o our_o saviour_n in_o this_o place_n say_v clear_o and_o positive_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o the_o jew_n understand_v how_o thereby_o he_o make_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v before_o abraham_n which_o can_v not_o be_v upon_o that_o account_n of_o his_o human_a birth_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o go_v about_o to_o show_v they_o be_v mistake_v which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o evangelist_n will_v have_v speak_v of_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o do_v run_v the_o hazard_n of_o be_v stone_v and_o indeed_o he_o not_o only_o be_v before_o abraham_n but_o also_o 1.17_o also_o colos_n 1.17_o before_o all_o thing_n and_o person_n adam_n not_o except_v one_o place_n more_o i_o shall_v speak_v of_o and_o then_o shall_v have_v do_v with_o this_o head_n i_o be_o 1.8_o be_o rev._n 1.8_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n say_v the_o lord_n which_o be_v which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o almighty_a as_o before_o alpha_n there_o be_v no_o other_o letter_n in_o the_o green_a alphabet_n which_o language_n the_o book_n be_v write_v in_o so_o before_o the_o son_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o and_o as_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v christ_n exist_v the_o first_o so_o he_o shall_v exist_v the_o last_o and_o herein_o the_o metaphor_n do_v exact_o fit_a and_o be_v explain_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n which_o though_o v._o 4._o be_v speak_v of_o the_o father_n yet_o it_o hinder_v not_o but_o be_v here_o attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o whole_a verse_n but_o what_o be_v adapt_v to_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n as_o to_o the_o name_n lord_n how_o often_o be_v the_o son_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n call_v by_o that_o name_n as_o to_o the_o expression_n which_o be_v which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v take_v out_o of_o the_o 44.6_o the_o isa_n 44.6_o prophet_n which_o be_v the_o explanation_n of_o the_o word_n jehovah_n they_o belong_v to_o christ_n as_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v the_o name_n do_v and_o so_o do_v the_o thing_n for_o in_o a_o place_n already_o quote_v the_o signification_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o he_o that_o be_v name_v alpha_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o first_o and_o which_o be_v may_v well_o be_v call_v he_o which_o be_v and_o he_o who_o be_v call_v omega_n the_o end_n and_o the_o last_o may_v also_o be_v well_o call_v he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v which_o be_v proper_o and_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n speak_v of_o christ_n as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o this_o 10.37_o this_o heb._n 10.37_o yet_o a_o little_a while_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v will_v come_v and_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o in_o 20._o in_o rev._n 17._o and_o 3.11_o and_o 16.15_o and_o 22.7_o 12_o 20._o several_a place_n of_o this_o book_n beside_o that_o in_o this_o whole_a chapter_n the_o apostle_n design_n be_v to_o describe_v the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o forego_n and_o follow_v verse_n so_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a he_o will_v in_o this_o v._o 8._o describe_v the_o father_n only_o and_o see_v in_o this_o first_o chapter_n he_o be_v to_o dispose_v the_o seven_o church_n to_o receive_v the_o epistle_n by_o the_o son_n to_o be_v direct_v to_o they_o with_o that_o submission_n and_o awful_a reverence_n as_o become_v they_o so_o to_o prepare_v their_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o due_a course_n to_o make_v a_o ample_a and_o glorious_a description_n of_o the_o son_n for_o the_o father_n do_v not_o immediate_o in_o his_o person_n show_v himself_o to_o or_o speak_v with_o man_n but_o the_o son_n do_v therefore_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o necessity_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v his_o own_o description_n see_v therefore_o how_o the_o word_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o description_n do_v belong_v to_o christ_n why_o shall_v not_o we_o say_v that_o the_o description_n be_v adapt_v for_o he_o this_o interpretation_n of_o we_o be_v natural_a with_o the_o word_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n it_o neither_o alter_v take_v away_o or_o add_v thereunto_o as_o their_o interpretation_n do_v with_o wrest_v force_v and_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n when_o the_o son_n absolute_o without_o any_o limitation_n or_o restriction_n call_v himself_o alpha_n and_o omega_n beginning_n and_o end_v first_o and_o last_o but_o it_o seem_v they_o will_v teach_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n how_o to_o speak_v though_o nothing_o can_v be_v say_v more_o full_o and_o plain_o than_o this_o be_v he_o do_v not_o say_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_o but_o join_v the_o person_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ay_o so_o when_o in_o the_o several_a epistle_n 2.7.17.26_o epistle_n rev._n 2.7.17.26_o to_o he_o that_o overcome_v he_o promise_v to_o give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o of_o the_o hide_a manna_n 2.5.12.21_o chap._n 2.5.12.21_o the_o white_a stone_n and_o the_o new_a name_n with_o power_n over_o the_o nation_n etc._n etc._n and_o 22.17_o and_o chap._n 22.17_o the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o to_o he_o that_o be_v thirsty_a he_o do_v not_o send_v they_o to_o the_o father_n but_o offer_v it_o himself_o as_o to_o the_o 4.10_o the_o john_n 4.10_o woman_n of_o samaria_n nay_o in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n he_o call_v man_n 38._o man_n chap._n 7.37_o 38._o to_o come_v to_o himself_o much_o more_o after_o his_o exaltation_n and_o glorisition_n but_o to_o conclude_v this_o 11.28_o matt._n 11.28_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n show_v how_o this_o be_v simple_o speak_v of_o christ_n not_o only_o in_o this_o 8_o verse_n but_o also_o in_o the_o 11_o and_o 17_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o 12_o and_o 13_o where_o he_o turn_v to_o see_v the_o voice_n that_o speak_v with_o he_o and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o seven_o candleitick_n he_o see_v one_o like_a
all_o man_n know_v he_o to_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n may_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n whereby_o he_o demonstrate_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n for_o divine_a honour_n belong_v to_o none_o else_o for_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v we_o must_v love_v honour_n and_o worship_v one_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o as_o we_o love_v god_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n so_o we_o must_v love_v god_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o any_o man_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o be_v a_o athema_n 16.22_o 1_o cor._n 16.22_o maran-atha_a he_o who_o love_v not_o the_o son_n love_v not_o the_o father_n and_o he_o who_o love_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n love_v not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n here_o i_o bring_v in_o point_n of_o worship_n the_o instance_n of_o love_n because_o without_o it_o no_o true_a worship_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o worship_n god_n otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v declare_v in_o his_o word_n he_o that_o woshipe_v not_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o worship_n god_n as_o he_o ought_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o worship_n god_n as_o god_n essential_o but_o also_o he_o must_v be_v in_o the_o three_o person_n for_o all_o three_o be_v the_o object_n of_o worship_n or_o else_o our_o religion_n be_v vain_a and_o we_o be_v to_o look_v not_o only_o to_o the_o object_n but_o also_o to_o the_o order_n of_o worship_n the_o father_n through_o the_o son_n 16._o john_n 16._o and_o by_o the_o son_n to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o so_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o go_v to_o both_o for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v 12.3_o rom._n ●_o 26_o 1_o cor._n 12.3_o but_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n and_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o neither_o can_v one_o say_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o glorify_v he_o except_o it_o be_v in_o the_o three_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o guide_n in_o worship_v that_o eternal_a and_o infinite_a be_v aught_o to_o teach_v we_o modesty_n and_o humility_n which_o be_v so_o essential_a in_o our_o serve_a god_n to_o adore_v the_o incomprehensibility_n of_o these_o high_a thing_n the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o son_n be_v be_v make_v flesh_n and_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o our_o weakness_n and_o then_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n 10.5_o 2_o cor._n 10.5_o here_o i_o can_v forbear_v insert_v the_o word_n of_o two_o eminent_a doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 5._o ambros_n de_fw-fr fid_fw-we ad_fw-la gratian_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 5._o mihi_fw-la impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la say_v one_o generationis_fw-la scire_fw-la secretum_fw-la mens_fw-la deficit_fw-la voxsilet_fw-la non_fw-la mea_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o angelorum_fw-la licet_fw-la scire_fw-la quod_fw-la natus_fw-la fit_a non_fw-la licet_fw-la discutere_fw-la quomodo_fw-la natus_fw-la sit_fw-la illud_fw-la negare_fw-la mihi_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la hoc_fw-la quaerere_fw-la metus_fw-la it_o be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o know_v the_o secret_a of_o that_o generation_n my_o understanding_n fail_v i_o my_o mouth_n be_v stop_v it_o be_v lawful_a not_o only_o for_o i_o but_o also_o for_o angel_n to_o know_v he_o be_v bear_v but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o inquire_v how_o he_o be_v bear_v that_o i_o can_v deny_v but_o i_o be_o afraid_a to_o search_v into_o this_o the_o other_o say_v filium_fw-la esse_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la patre_fw-la immortali_fw-la genitum_fw-la novi_fw-la sed_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la ignoro_fw-la spiritum_fw-la ex_fw-la co_fw-la procedere_fw-la scio_fw-la natura_fw-la chrisost_n hom_n de_fw-fr incomprehens_fw-la dei_fw-la natura_fw-la sed_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la nescio_fw-la i_o know_v the_o son_n to_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o immortal_a father_n but_o in_o what_o manner_n i_o can_v tell_v i_o know_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o he_o but_o how_o i_o know_v not_o these_o be_v just_o come_v into_o my_o thought_n though_o they_o exact_o be_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o present_a part_n of_o our_o discourse_n yet_o be_v much_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o here_o have_v set_v they_o down_o indeed_o in_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n man_n ought_v to_o yield_v a_o obedience_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v unity_n of_o nature_n and_o trinity_n of_o person_n for_o numero_fw-la deus_fw-la impair_v gaudet_fw-la so_o we_o must_v worship_v one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n our_o present_a purpose_n be_v to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v true_a essential_a eternal_a god_n because_o the_o same_o worship_n due_a only_o to_o the_o true_a eternal_a god_n be_v render_v unto_o he_o as_o anon_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n make_v it_o appear_v but_o now_o something_n must_v be_v premise_v which_o can_v contribute_v towards_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o point_n first_o christ_n enemy_n be_v not_o agree_v in_o this_o particular_a one_o valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la by_o we_o name_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o some_o other_o do_v flat_o deny_v christ_n this_o divine_a worship_n because_o they_o disow_v he_o essential_o to_o be_v god_n and_o no_o divine_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o creature_n which_o to_o do_v be_v idolatry_n but_o socinus_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o with_o such_o restriction_n as_o such_o a_o worship_n be_v all_o most_o no_o better_o than_o none_o at_o all_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v worship_v only_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v the_o stand_a sign_n and_o true_a reason_n why_o one_o who_o god_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a shall_v be_v worship_v but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n of_o sarepta_n of_o the_o shunamite_n 13.21_o 1_o king_n 17.22_o 2_o king_n 4.34_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 13.21_o and_o of_o the_o dead_a man_n that_o have_v touch_v the_o bone_n of_o elisha_n be_v revive_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o son_n of_o the_o woman_n of_o naim_n and_o the_o daughter_n of_o jairus_n lazarus_n dorcas_n and_o eutichus_n under_o the_o new_a be_v to_o be_v worship_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n of_o they_o wherefore_o some_o other_o cause_n than_o this_o must_v be_v assign_v why_o christ_n must_v be_v worship_v they_o say_v he_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n we_o own_o that_o christ_n mediator_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o that_o honour_n belong_v to_o he_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o deity_n for_o when_o god_n bring_v in_o the_o first_o bear_v into_o the_o world_n 1.6_o heb._n 1.6_o he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o he_o be_v call_v first_o beget_v not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o humanity_n for_o many_o be_v child_n of_o god_n before_o his_o birth_n but_o in_o respect_n to_o his_o eternal_a generation_n he_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o angel_n though_o he_o be_v not_o their_o mediator_n when_o we_o adore_v christ_n as_o mediator_n it_o be_v not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o office_n abstract_v from_o his_o deity_n but_o as_o he_o be_v true_a god_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v be_v worthy_a to_o receive_v as_o he_o do_v by_o the_o angel_n 5.12_o rev._n 5.12_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o elder_n honour_n and_o glory_n and_o blessing_n because_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 2.9_o colos_n 2.9_o the_o ark_n be_v not_o worship_v but_o god_n in_o the_o ark_n as_o not_o the_o bush_n but_o god_n in_o the_o bush_n not_o the_o ground_n which_o moses_n stand_v upon_o but_o god_n in_o that_o place_n sanctify_v by_o his_o special_a presence_n and_o so_o in_o several_a other_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n indeed_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v 2.7_o phil._n 2.7_o though_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o make_v a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n though_o not_o as_o a_o servant_n or_o as_o low_a than_o the_o angel_n by_o which_o all_o god_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o his_o divine_a nature_n 6._o v._o 6._o the_o form_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o shall_v remain_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n as_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o worship_n christ_n so_o be_v the_o church_n under_o the_o
assert_v the_o distinction_n of_o person_n but_o because_o they_o be_v distinct_a person_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n of_o the_o three_o person_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o one_o only_a god_n father_n maker_n and_o preserver_n of_o all_o and_o out_o of_o the_o text_n they_o produce_v they_o can_v make_v out_o what_o they_o intend_v how_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v never_o contain_v together_o under_o the_o name_n of_o god_n for_o the_o person_n be_v distinguish_v where_o scripture_n speak_v relative_o of_o god_n and_o do_v oppose_v or_o compare_v they_o or_o describe_v their_o propriety_n further_o they_o object_n they_o have_v distinct_a essence_n who_o working_n be_v distinct_a but_o father_n and_o son_n working_n be_v distinct_a therefore_o their_o essence_n be_v so_o but_o we_o say_v the_o major_a preposition_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o operation_n ad_fw-la extra_fw-la or_o outward_a for_o if_o whilst_o one_o do_v work_n the_o other_o cease_v than_o the_o essence_n be_v distinct_a but_o as_o to_o the_o inward_a working_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n or_o difference_n of_o essence_n far_o from_o it_o that_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v confirm_v the_o unity_n of_o essence_n for_o by_o the_o generation_n one_o and_o the_o same_o whole_a essence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v communicate_v unto_o the_o son_n and_o by_o this_o same_o reason_n there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o essence_n of_o both_o now_o the_o minor_a proposition_n speak_v of_o inward_a operation_n and_o this_o omonimy_n or_o ambiguity_n of_o term_n bring_v in_o four_o termini_fw-la in_o the_o argument_n contrary_a to_o rule_n but_o if_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o operation_n be_v understand_v than_o one_o of_o the_o proposition_n be_v false_a the_o major_n be_v understand_v of_o those_o ad_fw-la imra_fw-la the_o minor_a of_o those_o ad_fw-la extra_fw-la and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o incarnation_n there_o be_v two_o term_n to_o be_v consider_v a_o quo_fw-la from_o who_o and_o ad_fw-la quem_fw-la to_o or_o in_o who_o though_o as_o thus_o it_o be_v terminative_o in_o the_o son_n yet_o a_o quo_fw-la or_o originative_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n another_o argument_n of_o they_o be_v this_o the_o essence_n unbegotten_a and_o beget_v be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o essence_n beget_v and_o not_o beget_v but_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v unbegotten_a yet_o have_v beget_v the_o son_n but_o the_o son_n be_v be_v beget_v yet_o nor_o beget_v therefore_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o son_n this_o argument_n be_v borrow_a from_o the_o arrian_n whereof_o the_o minor_a preposition_n be_v false_a namely_o that_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v the_o name_n beget_v or_o not_o beget_v do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n but_o show_v a_o hypostatical_a or_o personal_a difference_n shall_v the_o essence_n beget_v it_o will_v either_o beget_v itself_o and_o so_o shall_v be_v beget_v of_o itself_o so_o it_o will_v make_v many_o different_a essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n whence_o will_v follow_v many_o go_n moreover_o as_o in_o natural_a thing_n not_o the_o essence_n but_o the_o compositum_fw-la do_v beget_v so_o in_o divine_a thing_n the_o person_n beget_v and_o be_v beget_v which_o yet_o be_v not_o a_o vain_a relation_n see_v it_o be_v not_o constitute_v without_o the_o essence_n now_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o divine_a essence_n do_v beget_v one_o can_v say_v either_o the_o son_n do_v beget_v or_o deny_v the_o son_n to_o have_v the_o divine_a essence_n again_o they_o say_v two_o or_o three_o distinct_a person_n have_v so_o many_o distinct_a essence_n for_o the_o distinction_n of_o essence_n do_v follow_v that_o of_o person_n so_o than_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o distinct_a person_n they_o have_v three_o distinct_a essence_n but_o the_o first_o preposition_n be_v true_a only_o in_o natural_a not_o in_o divine_a thing_n beside_o they_o be_v in_o a_o mistake_n when_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o real_a distinction_n except_o the_o thing_n do_v differ_v in_o a_o essential_a number_n when_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n that_o differ_v in_o the_o thing_n and_o definition_n which_o yet_o in_o essence_n and_o number_n be_v but_o one_o here_o by_o the_o by_o i_o say_v the_o word_n like_a and_o likeness_n when_o a_o comparison_n be_v make_v between_o the_o person_n be_v not_o convenient_a to_o be_v use_v but_o equal_a and_o equality_n which_o indeed_o contain_v a_o likeness_n but_o something_o above_o another_o thing_n i_o shall_v add_v here_o how_o some_o thing_n be_v proper_o speak_v of_o the_o essence_n which_o also_o be_v proper_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n for_o it_o be_v proper_o say_v of_o the_o essence_n and_o of_o the_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n that_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o holy_a for_o the_o word_n spirit_n be_v speak_v of_o as_o common_a and_o essential_a 4.24_o john_n 4.24_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n proper_o and_o personal_o of_o the_o son_n christ_n declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n 18._o rom._n 1.4_o heb._n 9.14_o ●pet_n 3_o 18._o and_o who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o and_o elsewhere_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n so_o of_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n also_o to_o be_v holy_a be_v a_o attribute_n of_o the_o essence_n yet_o in_o particular_a and_o proper_o in_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o this_o matter_n one_o thing_n more_o i_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o how_o adjective_n in_o the_o plural_a may_v be_v attribute_v to_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o number_n of_o person_n and_o substantive_n in_o the_o singular_a only_o upon_o account_n of_o the_o essence_n further_o they_o object_n christ_n have_v a_o father_n who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o father_n have_v no_o god_n call_v he_o therefore_o father_n and_o son_n be_v distinguish_v in_o essence_n the_o major_a they_o prove_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o to_o your_o father_n unto_o my_o god_n and_o to_o your_o god_n and_o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o i_o answer_v christ_n have_v a_o common_a father_n and_o god_n with_o we_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n be_v mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o so_o as_o in_o his_o mediatorship_n he_o be_v true_a man_n so_o he_o be_v true_a god_n this_o discourse_n be_v intend_v for_o his_o brethren_n he_o begin_v with_o the_o profession_n he_o make_v to_o own_v they_o as_o his_o brother_n go_v to_o my_o brethren_n all_o which_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o nature_n which_o the_o brotherhood_n do_v relate_v to_o and_o though_o the_o father_n continue_v such_o in_o relation_n to_o what_o the_o son_n be_v when_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n yet_o in_o the_o birth_n and_o incarnation_n the_o father_n remain_v what_o he_o be_v god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o flesh_n but_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o sense_n as_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o word_n in_o scripture_n it_o be_v declare_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o on_o what_o side_n they_o be_v brethren_n to_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 1.18_o colos_n 1.18_o i_o will_v declare_v thy_o name_n unto_o my_o brethren_n but_o he_o say_v before_o i_o be_o a_o worm_n and_o no_o man_n 22.6_o psal_n 22.6_o christ_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o first-born_a among_o many_o brethren_n also_o because_o the_o first-born_a from_o the_o dead_a furthermore_o they_o say_v if_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o god_n shall_v mean_v also_o himself_o he_o will_v include_v himself_o in_o the_o mention_n he_o make_v of_o god_n but_o he_o do_v not_o but_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o himself_o and_o god_n who_o he_o call_v the_o true_a god_n so_o in_o the_o apostolical_a write_n god_n and_o christ_n be_v speak_v of_o asunder_o which_o place_n i_o quote_v in_o the_o margin_n 10._o c._n john_n 3.16_o and_o 17.3_o d._n rom._n 16.23_o 1_o tim._n 6.13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o 1_o cor._n 15.24_o col._n 1.3_o eph._n 4.5_o 1_o thes_n 1.2_o 3_o 9_o 10._o to_o show_v we_o omit_v none_o of_o they_o so_o say_v they_o he_o not_o join_v himself_o with_o god_n show_v he_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o god_n thus_o the_o name_n god_n absolute_o take_v belong_v only_o
to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o this_o be_v guide_v by_o our_o own_o reason_n which_o in_o such_o matter_n be_v but_o a_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la a_o false_a and_o deceitful_a guide_n that_o will_v lead_v we_o to_o rock_n and_o precipice_n that_o only_o must_v be_v our_o rule_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n for_o a_o instance_n will_v not_o human_a reason_n suggest_v that_o if_o our_o saviour_n instead_o of_o poor_a fisherman_n unlearned_a and_o of_o no_o account_n in_o the_o world_n have_v call_v the_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n the_o nicodemus_n and_o man_n of_o good_a part_n and_o of_o quality_n in_o the_o world_n the_o gospel_n will_v have_v get_v more_o ground_n and_o be_v more_o spread_v abroad_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o god_n method_n who_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a 29_o mat._n 11.25.26_o 1_o cor._n 1.26_o 27_o 28_o 29_o and_o reveal_v they_o unto_o babe_n who_o have_v choose_v and_o call_v the_o foolish_a the_o weak_a and_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o the_o mighty_a and_o why_o so_o first_o because_o so_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n second_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n 7.48_o joh._n 7.48_o this_o confirm_v by_o experience_n for_o have_v any_o of_o the_o ruler_n or_o of_o the_o pharisee_n believe_v on_o he_o so_o then_o to_o insist_v on_o this_o reason_n be_v no_o less_o than_o to_o arraign_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o no_o man_n may_v or_o aught_o to_o do_v far_o some_o thing_n there_o be_v teach_v by_o philosophy_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o world_n of_o several_a thing_n therein_o and_o of_o man_n soul_n which_o to_o human_a understanding_n appear_v to_o have_v no_o truth_n in_o they_o yet_o in_o those_o thing_n if_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o learning_n and_o wit_n of_o those_o great_a man_n we_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o esteem_n and_o reverence_n for_o their_o opinion_n much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o have_v a_o reverence_n for_o the_o truth_n contain_v in_o god_n word_n and_o receive_v by_o so_o many_o great_a and_o good_a christian_n and_o suffer_v for_o by_o they_o in_o all_o age_n for_o never_o be_v any_o divine_a truth_n more_o universal_o and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o time_n receive_v notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n of_o some_o wicked_a man_n than_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n as_o indeed_o not_o only_o the_o offer_n and_o preach_v but_o also_o the_o whole_a application_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v obtain_v in_o this_o and_o another_o life_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n because_o everywhere_o the_o father_n work_v by_o his_o son_n and_o this_o with_o the_o father_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o if_o we_o believe_v not_o we_o can_v have_v either_o the_o use_n or_o comfort_n of_o thing_n relate_v to_o salvation_n but_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n 12._o 1_o cor._n 2.10_o 12._o and_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v free_o give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n it_o be_v then_o our_o duty_n and_o comfort_n to_o know_v the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o both_o through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o spirit_n search_v all_o thing_n yea_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n as_o christ_n say_v none_o know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o so_o john_n testify_v that_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n have_v not_o the_o father_n and_o paul_n 2.12_o mat._n 11.27_o 1_o joh._n 2.23_o eph._n 2.12_o that_o those_o that_o be_v without_o christ_n be_v also_o without_o hope_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v say_v indeed_o how_o god_n at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o several_a manner_n speak_v in_o time_n pass_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o of_o salvation_n than_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a till_o the_o last_o day_n when_o he_o speak_v unto_o man_n by_o his_o son_n when_o we_o hear_v of_o the_o salvation_n which_o god_n send_v into_o the_o world_n then_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v mention_v because_o without_o they_o there_o be_v none_o among_o several_a other_o place_n in_o scripture_n wherein_o this_o great_a work_n be_v speak_v of_o and_o wherein_o we_o find_v the_o three_o person_n mention_v that_o be_v remarkable_a wherein_o the_o apostle_n join_v they_o together_o 10.29_o heb._n 10.29_o of_o how_o much_o sore_a punishment_n suppose_v you_o shall_v he_o be_v think_v worthy_a who_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v count_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherewith_o he_o be_v sanctify_v a_o unholy_a thing_n and_o have_v do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n all_o three_o be_v concern_v so_o they_o be_v before_o salvation_n be_v actual_o effect_v long_o before_o when_o all_o be_v under_o type_n and_o figure_n 1.21_o 1_o pet._n 1.11_o 12_o compare_v with_o 2_o pet._n 1.21_o for_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o prophet_n prophesy_v of_o old_a so_o now_o in_o this_o great_a business_n the_o son_n have_v his_o part_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o also_o as_o much_o as_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o reveal_v unto_o we_o about_o this_o adorable_a mystery_n we_o must_v study_v and_o inquire_v after_o but_o no_o far_o where_o god_n be_v silent_a we_o must_v be_v so_o too_o and_o we_o ought_v to_o curb_v our_o curiosity_n and_o presumption_n and_o not_o to_o stretch_v our_o brain_n to_o find_v out_o proof_n out_o of_o comparison_n with_o sun_n soul_n rainbow_n tree_n triangle_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v all_o lame_a and_o defective_a this_o i_o speak_v as_o to_o we_o who_o believe_v that_o high_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n upon_o god_n word_n wherein_o he_o have_v reveal_v it_o unto_o we_o for_o as_o to_o the_o abominable_a wretch_n which_o out_o of_o hell_n be_v break_v loof_o against_o it_o and_o not_o only_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o and_o despise_v and_o hate_v it_o we_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o god_n if_o peradventure_o he_o will_v give_v they_o repentance_n ●●_o 2_o tim._n 2._o ●●_o to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o they_o go_v about_o to_o rob_v of_o that_o glory_n and_o honour_n which_o scripture_n declare_v do_v belong_v to_o he_o and_o which_o therein_o he_o assume_v unto_o himself_o and_o who_o they_o will_v make_v a_o mere_a man_n a_o creature_n and_o if_o i_o dare_v speak_v it_o without_o blasphemy_n a_o imaginary_a and_o a_o mock_v god_n act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o god_n as_o a_o actor_n do_v upon_o a_o stage_n that_o of_o a_o prince_n when_o he_o be_v not_o such_o in_o scripture_n the_o name_n of_o god_n absolute_o attribute_v to_o none_o but_o unto_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o also_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o many_o we_o already_o quote_v and_o other_o not_o we_o have_v give_v instance_n of_o all_o the_o incommunicable_a name_n of_o divine_a nature_n appropriate_v unto_o he_o also_o we_o make_v it_o appear_v how_o all_o attribute_n proper_a to_o the_o true_a god_n and_o never_o communicate_v to_o the_o creature_n do_v belong_v to_o christ_n as_o do_v all_o divine_a work_n true_o such_o why_o then_o shall_v not_o all_o own_o he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n by_o nature_n see_v essential_a attribute_n be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o essence_n the_o oneness_n of_o which_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n he_o do_v attribute_n unto_o himself_o explain_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o call_v god_n his_o father_n not_o by_o adoption_n or_o grace_n or_o mere_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o assumption_n of_o our_o human_a nature_n 38._o john_n 10.30_o 38._o or_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o office_n and_o dignity_n but_o because_o of_o his_o eternal_a generation_n and_o co-essentiality_a with_o the_o father_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o say_v i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o 14.33_o chap._n 1.14_o &_o 3.16_o rom._n 8.3_o 32._o mar._n 14.33_o and_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o oneness_n of_o nature_n he_o say_v the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o this_o eternal_a generation_n in_o one_o essence_n be_v denote_v in_o scripture_n when_o call_v only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n god_n own_o and_o proper_a son_n the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n yea_o such_o a_o son_n as_o be_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o angel_n as_o the_o son_n be_v to_o the_o servant_n which_o sonship_n and_o generation_n be_v more_o clear_o express_v when_o he_o be_v call_v the_o brightness_n and_o
account_n to_o be_v call_v such_o a_o man_n son_n yet_o not_o be_v his_o proper_a son_n thus_o a_o adopt_a though_o he_o excel_v never_o so_o much_o above_o the_o rest_n yet_o that_o can_v never_o make_v he_o to_o be_v a_o proper_a son_n to_o refute_v some_o cavil_n of_o they_o one_o thing_n more_o we_o be_v again_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o upon_o this_o matter_n how_o the_o the_o word_n god_n be_v in_o scripture_n sometime_o take_v essential_o for_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n and_o sometime_o personal_o for_o one_o of_o the_o person_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 20.28_o say_v act_n 20.28_o god_n have_v purchase_v his_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n which_o be_v mean_v our_o saviour_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n must_v be_v understand_v those_o place_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o and_o there_o be_v none_o beside_o he_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o other_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n to_o show_v the_o oneness_n of_o the_o nature_n which_o as_o well_o as_o they_o we_o do_v affirm_v but_o as_o to_o teach_v well_o one_o must_v distinguish_v well_o so_o for_o want_v of_o observe_v this_o rule_n that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n they_o misapply_v it_o to_o the_o person_n and_o so_o make_v a_o confusion_n between_o thing_n to_o be_v distinguish_v we_o already_o prove_v how_o the_o unity_n of_o nature_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n nor_o the_o plurality_n of_o person_n destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o nature_n which_o mistake_v of_o they_o do_v also_o hold_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n or_o of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o about_o our_o saviour_n person_n in_o who_o they_o confound_v the_o nature_n so_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o his_o humanity_n they_o misapply_v to_o his_o divinity_n the_o second_o argument_n whereby_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n natural_a son_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o word_n only_o beget_v which_o for_o great_a confirmation_n be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n in_o several_a 1.18_o several_a john_n 1.18_o place_n wherefore_o in_o scripture_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o show_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v for_o that_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o 5._o and_o heb._n 1.2_o vers_fw-la 5._o paul_n interpretation_n of_o it_o for_o he_o say_v such_o be_v the_o son_n to_o who_o only_o god_n say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o word_n god_n only_a beget_v son_n do_v all_o mean_a christ_n only_o the_o adversary_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v call_v so_o only_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n above_o the_o rest_n as_o we_o already_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o instance_n about_o isaac_n whereunto_o here_o we_o shall_v add_v that_o of_o solomon_n which_o also_o they_o make_v use_v of_o called_z say_v they_o 4.3_o they_o prov._n 4.3_o only_o beget_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o mother_n but_o they_o must_v not_o go_v about_o to_o impose_v upon_o we_o for_o in_o the_o original_a the_o word_n beget_v be_v not_o in_o but_o only_o which_o in_o our_o bibles_n be_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n explain_v by_o belove_a only_o belove_v one_o may_v be_v the_o only_a yet_o not_o only_o beget_v son_n when_o of_o many_o child_n one_o alone_o be_v remain_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v dead_a as_o to_o isaac_n we_o already_o observe_v he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v in_o relation_n to_o sarab_n by_o promise_n but_o christ_n be_v so_o call_v god_n only_o beget_v son_n that_o it_o be_v never_o say_v to_o any_o one_o else_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n etc._n etc._n whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v he_o so_o to_o be_v god_n son_n as_o to_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o he_o that_o be_v according_a to_o his_o nature_n in_o the_o word_n he_o be_v proper_o and_o absolute_o call_v the_o only_o beget_v 1.14_o beget_v john_n 1.14_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o be_v not_o comparative_a as_o only_o denote_v a_o likeness_n but_o as_o chrysostomus_n observe_v well_o be_v expressive_a of_o the_o truth_n as_o be_v real_o as_o if_o one_o willing_a to_o describe_v a_o royal_a state_n and_o carriage_n of_o a_o king_n shall_v say_v as_o that_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n become_v and_o proper_a for_o a_o king_n and_o far_o the_o evangelist_n add_v v._o 18._o the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o besom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o where_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v his_o own_o proper_a name_n signify_v how_o beside_o he_o there_o be_v no_o true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n again_o 3.16_o again_o john_n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n and_z 4.9_o and_z 1_o john_n 4.9_o god_n send_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n see_v what_o a_o care_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v take_v to_o confirm_v and_o make_v that_o truth_n know_v how_o christ_n be_v proper_o and_o absolute_o god_n only_a beget_v son_n now_o he_o be_v absolute_o only_o beget_v that_o be_v not_o only_o so_o call_v look_v upon_o and_o love_v as_o such_o but_o that_o be_v real_o so_o and_o indeed_o we_o know_v our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v call_v 20.17_o call_v joh._n 20.17_o brother_n of_o his_o disciple_n and_o of_o 2.17_o of_o heb._n 2.17_o believer_n but_o not_o in_o a_o proper_a and_o strict_a sense_n the_o relation_n of_o brotherhood_n have_v a_o great_a latitude_n for_o among_o the_o jew_n person_n belong_v to_o any_o branch_n of_o a_o family_n to_o a_o tribe_n or_o to_o any_o of_o the_o tribe_n be_v call_v brethren_n 1.19_o brethren_n gal._n 1.19_o james_n and_o john_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n brother_n and_o in_o another_o sense_n our_o saviour_n call_v 12.50_o call_v mat._n 12.50_o his_o brother_n his_o sister_n and_o his_o mother_n whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o be_v our_o brother_n in_o that_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o human_a nature_n all_o man_n be_v brother_n in_o human_a nature_n but_o adoption_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o he_o as_o it_o be_v of_o our_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v never_o call_v adopt_v as_o we_o be_v neither_o can_v he_o be_v adopt_v with_o we_o see_v we_o be_v adopt_v in_o he_o we_o be_v the_o branch_n of_o the_o wild_a olive-tree_n that_o have_v be_v graft_v in_o he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a natural_a olive-tree_n and_o thereby_o be_v become_v member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n how_o can_v our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v call_v god_n only_o beget_v son_n if_o he_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o the_o more_o to_o enforce_v this_o in_o that_o s●●e_z chapter_n and_o verse_n john_n 18._o it_o be_v add_v which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n can_v he_o be_v in_o and_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n and_o not_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n all_o other_o child_n of_o god_n be_v make_v but_o this_o be_v beget_v and_o only_o beget_v none_o but_o he_o be_v proper_o beget_v our_o three_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n question_n to_o the_o pharisee_n 44._o pharisee_n mat._n 12.41_o 41_o 4●_n 44._o what_o think_v you_o of_o christ_n who_o son_n be_v he_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o the_o son_n of_o david_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o how_o then_o do_v david_n in_o spirit_n call_v he_o lord_n by_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v he_o show_v how_o in_o he_o beside_o human_a nature_n there_o be_v another_o namely_o the_o divine_a according_a to_o which_o he_o by_o no_o mean_n may_v be_v call_v david_n son_n but_o david_n lord_n which_o to_o the_o pharisee_n prove_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n for_o upon_o this_o same_o it_o be_v positive_o say_v v._o 46._o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o answer_v he_o a_o word_n one_o will_v think_v this_o shall_v also_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o socinian_o indeed_o there_o the_o lord_n propose_v the_o question_n about_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o son_n who_o natural_a son_n he_o be_v whereunto_o the_o pharisee_n return_v a_o imperfect_a answer_n for_o only_o they_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n but_o the_o lord_n jesus_n out_o of_o scripture_n which_o they_o can_v not_o deny_v conclude_v that_o since_o he_o be_v by_o david_n confession_n his_o lord_n he_o must_v in_o he_o have_v another_o nature_n beside_o human_a according_a to_o which_o he_o may_v not_o be_v call_v
david_n son_n for_o if_o only_a upon_o some_o borrow_a account_n or_o accidental_a reason_n he_o be_v david_n lord_n as_o may_v be_v some_o power_n and_o dignity_n above_o he_o than_o christ_n argument_n will_v quite_o loose_v its_o strength_n which_o whole_o lie_v in_o this_o if_o he_o be_v his_o lord_n how_o can_v he_o be_v his_o son_n upon_o some_o extraordinary_a account_n and_o relation_n it_o may_v happen_v that_o a_o son_n may_v become_v a_o lord_n over_o his_o father_n but_o here_o christ_n be_v certain_o assert_v to_o be_v lord_n over_o david_n and_o in_o some_o sense_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o david_n to_o become_v lord_n over_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v upon_o no_o other_o account_n but_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n beside_o that_o he_o be_v david_n lord_n in_o david_n time_n and_o before_o his_o birth_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n his_o son_n he_o be_v according_a to_o the_o f●esh_n and_o his_o humanity_n and_o his_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o his_o divinity_n the_o four_o argument_n whereby_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n natural_a son_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n whereby_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v such_o a_o son_n as_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n not_o any_o other_o way_n to_o be_v understand_v than_o by_o nature_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o this_o the_o jew_n take_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n and_o for_o that_o same_o cause_n call_v he_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o will_v have_v stone_v he_o and_o thereupon_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o go_v about_o to_o show_v they_o be_v mistake_v though_o his_o life_n be_v concern_v on_o the_o contrary_n he_o use_v argument_n to_o make_v they_o believe_v he_o be_v so_o though_o to_o they_o it_o seem_v incredible_a and_o blasphemous_a 5._o chap._n 5._o and_o in_o another_o text_n he_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v such_o a_o son_n of_o god_n as_o be_v of_o a_o equal_a power_n with_o and_o can_v do_v the_o same_o work_n as_o the_o father_n so_o that_o what_o thing_n soever_o the_o father_n do_v this_o also_o do_v the_o son_n likewise_o the_o son_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o father_n without_o the_o son_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o oneness_n of_o nature_n and_o equality_n of_o powe●_n though_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o he_o v._o 7._o my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v conclude_v he_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n yet_o though_o they_o be_v offend_v at_o it_o and_o he_o thereupon_o do_v run_v the_o hazard_n of_o his_o life_n though_o he_o never_o be_v so_o uncharitable_a as_o to_o give_v any_o one_o just_a ground_n of_o offence_n nor_o so_o rash_a as_o unnecessary_o to_o venture_v his_o life_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o deny_v his_o equality_n with_o the_o father_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a with_o several_a argument_n he_o confirm_v it_o from_o v._o 19_o to_o 22._o and_o this_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o equality_n only_o in_o some_o respect_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o natural_a power_n and_o operation_n argue_v a_o absolute_a equality_n and_o as_o in_o power_n so_o in_o nature_n 10.30_o nature_n john_n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o and_o v._o 38._o you_o may_v by_o my_o work_n believe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o i_o in_o he_o as_o for_o great_a confirmation_n 14.10_o confirmation_n ch_n 14.10_o repeat_v out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o john_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o augustine_n etc._n augustine_n pereant_fw-la vaniloqui_fw-la &_o mentis_fw-la seductores_fw-la etc._n etc._n word_n be_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o let_v vain_a and_o seducer_n arrius_n and_o sabellius_n perish_v christ_n say_v not_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_o one_o but_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o when_o i_o say_v one_o let_v the_o arian_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o and_o what_o i_o say_v we_o be_v let_v the_o sabellian_n mind_n it_o let_v not_o the_o arian_n divide_v one_o nor_o the_o sabellian_n take_v away_o be_v one_o we_o refer_v to_o nature_n be_v to_o the_o diversity_n of_o person_n the_o five_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n his_o own_o word_n and_o we_o know_v he_o not_o only_o to_o be_v true_a but_o truth_n itself_o 14.6_o itself_o john_n 14.6_o though_o he_o bear_v record_n 8.14_o record_n c._n 8.14_o of_o himself_o this_o be_v when_o in_o a_o legal_a way_n be_v ask_v by_o caiaphas_n and_o 64._o and_o mat._n 26.63_o 64._o adjure_v by_o the_o live_a god_n to_o tell_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n 62._o god_n mar._n 14.61_o 62._o the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a he_o own_v it_o and_o say_v thou_o have_v say_v i_o be_o for_o which_o confession_n he_o be_v accuse_v of_o blasphemy_n and_o condemn_v to_o death_n for_o say_v they_o to_o pilate_n 19.7_o pilate_n joh._n 19.7_o we_o have_v a_o law_n and_o by_o our_o law_n he_o ought_v to_o die_v because_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o he_o suffer_v for_o own_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o confession_n of_o his_o s._n paul_n take_v special_a notice_n of_o in_o the_o charge_n he_o give_v his_o disciple_n 6.13_o disciple_n 1_o tim._n 6.13_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n or_o else_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v account_v a_o blasphemy_n for_o any_o jew_n to_o have_v call_v himself_o son_n of_o god_n no_o more_o than_o god_n people_n abraham_n seed_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o grace_n and_o god_n they_o call_v their_o father_n john_n 8.41_o yet_o think_v not_o they_o be_v blasphemer_n for_o that_o therefore_o christ_n word_n they_o take_v in_o another_o that_o be_v in_o a_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n indeed_o the_o high_a priest_n question_n be_v a_o snare_n lay_v for_o christ_n for_o though_o they_o seek_v false_a witness_n and_o many_o come_v yet_o their_o witness_n do_v not_o agree_v together_o wherefore_o they_o seek_v to_o have_v something_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n wherewith_o to_o accuse_v he_o the_o question_n be_v among_o other_o thing_n ground_v upon_o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o five_o and_o ten_o chapter_n of_o john_n whether_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o god_n and_o in_o power_n equal_a with_o he_o which_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o be_v natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o same_o essence_n which_o he_o have_v affirmative_o answer_v unto_o and_o say_v he_o be_v thereupon_o have_v gain_v their_o point_n they_o rend_v their_o clothes_n and_o say_v what_o need_v we_o any_o far_a witness_n and_o upon_o this_o very_a confession_n he_o be_v accuse_v condemn_a and_o execute_v hence_o i_o ask_v socinian_n do_v christ_n speak_v the_o truth_n when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n one_o with_o he_o or_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o to_o he_o equal_a in_o power_n i_o far_o ask_v whether_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o well_o apprehend_v this_o to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o his_o word_n if_o so_o as_o certain_o both_o be_v true_a if_o socinian_n have_v be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o jew_n they_o will_v have_v use_v he_o as_o they_o do_v and_o will_v do_v the_o like_a if_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n for_o some_o of_o they_o when_o they_o write_v and_o give_v a_o character_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n person_n they_o seem_v to_o take_v a_o pleasure_n to_o say_v he_o be_v by_o the_o senate_n or_o council_n of_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o jerusalem_n condemn_v and_o execute_v for_o blasphemy_n in_o that_o he_o have_v say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o say_v so_o it_o be_v most_o true_a out_o of_o john_n 10.36_o but_o i_o ask_v again_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v so_o do_v he_o speak_v the_o truth_n or_o not_o if_o the_o truth_n why_o do_v man_n not_o believe_v he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o sense_n the_o jew_n understand_v it_o true_a proper_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n equal_a with_o god_n for_o this_o they_o take_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o what_o he_o own_v himself_o to_o be_v than_o he_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v speak_v a_o lie_n which_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o such_o blasphemer_n our_o bless_a lord_n speak_v in_o defiance_n as_o once_o he_o do_v to_o the_o jew_n 8.46_o jew_n john_n 8.46_o which_o of_o you_o convince_v i_o of_o sin_n we_o know_v he_o suffer_v as_o a_o blasphemer_n a_o deceiver_n and_o a_o transgressor_n but_o be_v he_o real_o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 3.18_o say_v 1_o pet._n 3.18_o he_o suffer_v the_o just_a
for_o the_o unjust_a as_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n it_o seem_v these_o socinian_o set_v their_o hand_n and_o seal_n to_o his_o condemnation_n the_o same_o question_v as_o be_v between_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o jew_n be_v now_o between_o socinian_o and_o we_o he_o say_v he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n equal_a and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n which_o socinian_n no_o more_o than_o jew_n be_v willing_a to_o believe_v and_o do_v flat_o deny_v in_o the_o sense_n for_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v namely_o for_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n when_o the_o devil_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o peremptory_a for_o he_o make_v it_o but_o questionable_a when_o at_o the_o time_n he_o tempt_v he_o he_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o at_o several_a other_o time_n those_o wicked_a spirit_n own_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o socinian_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n when_o he_o do_v several_a time_n call_v and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o socinian_o sure_o he_o who_o be_v the_o truth_n will_v not_o have_v speak_v against_o it_o nor_o allow_v other_o to_o tell_v a_o lie_n now_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o call_v himself_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o the_o forequote_v place_n of_o john_n where_o he_o own_v he_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v give_v his_o word_n and_o have_v make_v himself_o god_n in_o opposition_n to_o man_n that_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n which_o no_o man_n be_v but_o also_o in_o other_o place_n as_o when_o he_o ask_v the_o blind_a man_n do_v thou_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o who_o the_o man_n ought_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o worship_v he_o as_o he_o do_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o man_n must_v believe_v in_o and_o worship_v the_o only_a true_a god_n also_o martha_n 11.27_o martha_n joh._n 11.27_o declare_v she_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o a_o gradation_n from_o his_o office_n to_o his_o person_n for_o the_o christ_n or_o messiah_n which_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o ancient_a jew_n according_a to_o several_a prophecy_n believe_v the_o messiah_n to_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n and_o god_n by_o nature_n which_o that_o second_o psalm_n do_v clear_o prove_v among_o many_o other_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n wherefore_o the_o psalmist_n v._o 10._o exhort_v king_n to_o be_v wise_a and_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v instruct_v and_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o to_o kiss_v the_o son_n to_o kiss_v his_o foot_n in_o token_n of_o obedience_n and_o submission_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o they_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a a_o little_a wrath_n be_v sufficient_a to_o break_v the_o heathen_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n all_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o last_o verse_n the_o prophet_n declare_v bless_v be_v all_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o man_n be_v not_o to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o any_o but_o in_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n in_o which_o sense_n scripture_n show_v how_o christ_n be_v call_v god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o in_o that_o positive_a text_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o but_o also_o out_o of_o this_o other_o 8.19_o other_o john_n 8.19_o you_o neither_o know_v i_o nor_o my_o father_n for_o if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o shall_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o because_o we_o be_v one_o and_o he_o that_o see_v i_o see_v he_o that_o send_v i_o because_o he_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o he_o that_o send_v he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v confirm_v in_o that_o other_o notable_a place_n 11._o place_n john_n 12.45_o ch_n 14.9_o 10_o 11._o he_o that_o have_v see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o father_n for_z i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o this_o truth_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o important_a for_o it_o be_v affirm_v in_o one_o verse_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o next_o which_o truth_n appear_v yet_o far_o v._o 7._o if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o shall_v have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o and_o from_o henceforth_o you_o know_v he_o and_o have_v see_v he_o the_o reason_n must_v needs_o be_v this_o because_o you_o have_v see_v i_o and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n to_o show_v that_o oneness_n and_o sameness_n of_o he_o in_o nature_n and_o power_n with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o i_o will_v do_v which_o for_o great_a assurance_n and_o confirmation_n be_v repeat_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n if_o you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o i_o myself_o there_o be_v no_o need_n for_o you_o to_o go_v to_o any_o one_o else_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n 3.16_o godliness_n 1_o tim_n 3.16_o whereof_o the_o first_o part_n be_v that_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a one_o by_o his_o expression_n the_o thing_n be_v unquestionable_a and_o most_o certain_a for_o he_o say_v without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n but_o socinian_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n for_o they_o make_v not_o only_o a_o great_a controversy_n but_o give_v a_o flat_a denial_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n and_o one_o of_o they_o here_o among_o we_o have_v late_o reprint_v and_o set_v his_o name_n to_o a_o book_n with_o this_o title_n christian_a religion_n not_o mysterious_a as_o it_o be_v to_o give_v the_o apostle_n the_o lie_n on_o which_o i_o intend_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o make_v some_o few_o general_a observation_n towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o my_o discourse_n we_o must_v do_v our_o duty_n though_o other_o neglect_v they_o and_o endeavour_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o convince_v or_o confound_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n who_o be_v suffer_v with_o bare_a face_n to_o sow_v their_o tare_n and_o spread_v their_o poison_n and_o blasphemy_n as_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o problem_n and_o a_o disputable_a case_n whether_o or_o not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v just_o or_o unjust_o suffer_v for_o blasphemy_n for_o have_v affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n good_a lord_n what_o time_n be_v we_o come_v to_o and_o how_o great_a a_o darkness_n be_v the_o nation_n fall_v into_o after_o so_o much_o light_n and_o now_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o blasphemy_n let_v i_o observe_v how_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v about_o it_o to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o essential_a son_n of_o god_n let_v the_o etymology_n and_o derivation_n of_o the_o word_n blasphemy_n be_v what_o it_o will_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o in_o scripture_n 6._o scripture_n rev._n 13.5_o 6._o it_o be_v use_v to_o express_v when_o any_o thing_n be_v say_v or_o do_v against_o god_n in_o his_o nature_n or_o attribute_n or_o when_o one_o do_v assume_v and_o arrogate_v unto_o himself_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n we_o read_v when_o hezekiah_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o rabshakeh_a 22._o 2_o king_n 19.3_o 6_o 22._o he_o say_v this_o be_v a_o day_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o god_n call_v it_o so_o within_o few_o verse_n after_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o king_n of_o assyria_n have_v blaspheme_v i_o and_o again_o who_o have_v thou_o blaspheme_v in_o the_o second_o sense_n the_o jew_n call_v our_o bless_a saviour_n blasphemer_n we_o stone_v thou_o not_o say_v they_o to_o he_o 10.33_o he_o john_n 10.33_o for_o a_o good_a work_n but_o for_o blasphemy_n and_o because_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n make_v thyself_o god_n and_o so_o after_o his_o confession_n before_o the_o chief_a priest_n they_o say_v you_o have_v hear_v the_o blasphemy_n wherefore_o if_o blasphemy_n be_v against_o god_n true_o and_o essential_o take_v may_v we_o not_o conclude_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v true_o essential_o god_n he_o call_v blasphemy_n what_o the_o jew_n have_v say_v against_o he_o 23._o he_o mark_v 3.22_o 23._o that_o be_v do_v cast_v devil_n by_o beelzebub_n prince_n of_o devil_n the_o evangelist_n lay_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o abuse_v put_v upon_o he_o after_o he_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o high_a priest_n 22.65_o priest_n luk._n 22.65_o and_o
and_o what_o john_n express_v thus_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n s._n paul_n call_v it_o 3.16_o it_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n if_o by_o the_o word_n flesh_n human_a nature_n be_v mean_v as_o certain_o it_o be_v than_o this_o import_v that_o god_n appear_v make_v himself_o know_v and_o be_v manifest_a in_o assume_v our_o human_a nature_n and_o that_o the_o god_n that_o be_v thus_o make_v flesh_n and_o be_v manifest_a be_v christ_n jesus_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n that_o be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o the_o nature_n be_v the_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n and_o the_o form_n give_v that_o be_v well_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n 7._o god_n phil._n 2.6_o 7._o because_o it_o be_v his_o right_n 〈◊〉_d take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o be_v make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o be_v find_v in_o fashion_n as_o a_o man_n he_o be_v god_n before_o he_o be_v make_v in_o that_o likeness_n this_o be_v plain_a that_o a_o god_n become_v man_n he_o be_v make_v that_o which_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v that_o which_o he_o be_v that_o this_o god_n that_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o find_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n here_o be_v explain_v what_o we_o must_v understand_v by_o flesh_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n be_v declare_v elsewhere_o 8.3_o elsewhere_o rom._n 8.3_o god_n send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n all_o these_o represent_v christ_n as_o god_n and_o as_o man_n do_v clear_o demonstrate_v he_o to_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n another_o place_n there_o be_v much_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o be_v this_o 9.5_o this_o rom._n 9.5_o of_o who_o the_o israelite_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o this_o restriction_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n do_v imply_v that_o christ_n come_v not_o from_o the_o jew_n concern_v some_o other_o thing_n this_o settle_v two_o relation_n in_o christ_n one_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n as_o express_v act_n 2.30_o what_o must_v the_o other_o be_v scripture_n usual_o do_v oppose_v the_o spirit_n to_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o spirit_n so_o in_o christ_n there_o must_v be_v a_o principle_n that_o be_v spiritual_a or_o else_o this_o restriction_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v frivolous_a and_o not_o pertinent_a one_o thing_n can_v be_v distinguish_v of_o itself_o a_o thing_n be_v in_o itself_o but_o one_o thing_n and_o distinction_n be_v between_o different_a thing_n for_o no_o one_o thing_n do_v differ_v from_o itself_o now_o that_o as_o there_o be_v in_o christ_n a_o principle_n concern_v the_o flesh_n and_o another_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n anon_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o but_o now_o thus_o far_o we_o must_v say_v that_o as_o by_o the_o flesh_n his_o humanity_n be_v mean_v so_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n by_o the_o spirit_n for_o 3.17_o for_o 1_o joh._n 4.24_o 2_o cor._n 3.17_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o text_n we_o now_o be_v upon_o be_v remarkable_a upon_o several_a account_n our_o bless_a saviour_n as_o it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v be_v a_o jew_n bear_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o of_o the_o family_n of_o david_n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n when_o he_o say_v of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v which_o do_v necessary_o imply_v he_o come_v not_o of_o they_o concern_v some_o other_o thing_n in_o he_o the_o pedigree_n of_o his_o manhood_n be_v indeed_o derive_v from_o thence_o but_o it_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a there_o to_o have_v seek_v for_o another_o genealogy_n of_o this_o melchisedec_n the_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d join_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d show_v how_o in_o he_o beside_o human_a nature_n there_o be_v another_o for_o s._n paul_n who_o trouble_v not_o his_o reader_n with_o superfluous_a expression_n will_v not_o have_v add_v those_o word_n except_o in_o christ_n have_v be_v another_o nature_n or_o to_o what_o purpose_n say_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o herein_o chief_o lie_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n be_v bear_v among_o they_o their_o privilege_n do_v not_o herein_o consist_v that_o moses_n jo●huah_n elijah_n john_n baptist_n etc._n etc._n be_v bear_v among_o they_o they_o all_o be_v but_o man_n but_o that_o christ_n be_v because_o he_o be_v god_n for_o this_o he_o add_v as_o the_o great_a reason_n and_o speak_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o he_o say_v not_o be_v call_v but_o be_v he_o be_v god_n over_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o stock_n tha●_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o jew_n before_o he_o or_o over_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o the_o word_n bless_v for_o ever_o be_v in_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o the_o true_a eternal_a god_n and_o even_o in_o our_o saviour_n time_n when_o the_o jew_n say_v the_o bless_a they_o mean_v the_o true_a god_n thus_o the_o high_a priest_n ask_v the_o lord_n jesus_n 14.61_o jesus_n mark_v 14.61_o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o another_o evangelist_n express_v thus_o 70._o thus_o luke_n 20_o 70._o be_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o another_o place_n the_o same_o apostle_n afford_v a_o convince_a proof_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o in_o christ_n be_v two_o nature_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o thus_o 4._o thus_o rom._n 1.3_o 4._o concern_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a wherein_o s._n paul_n teach_v in_o what_o respect_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o thus_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nature_n and_o according_a to_o that_o spirit_n he_o have_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n certain_o the_o opposition_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n show_v he_o can_v be_v son_n of_o god_n upon_o both_o account_n but_o only_o upon_o one_o for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v according_a to_o both_o paul_n will_v have_v say_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o as_o to_o the_o spirit_n and_o herein_o will_v have_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n for_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o 9.5_o to_o rom._n 9.5_o scripture_n to_o call_v the_o lord_n jesus_n god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o god_n and_o flesh_n be_v opposite_a so_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o say_v christ_n be_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n for_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o same_o he_o may_v be_v call_v god_n as_o we_o see_v it_o both_o join_v 82.6_o join_v psal_n 82.6_o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o all_o of_o you_o be_v child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o we_o read_v where_o the_o jew_n upbraid_v our_o saviour_n 36._o saviour_n joh._n 10.33_o 36._o that_o he_o make_v himself_o god_n that_o be_v absolute_o he_o render_v the_o word_n thus_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n be_v say_v 8._o say_v phil._n 2.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o to_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n and_o make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n it_o be_v not_o say_v make_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n but_o be_v his_o be_v be_v relate_v to_o god_n and_o make_v to_o man_n he_o be_v god_n but_o make_v man_n he_o be_v make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o form_v in_o fashion_n as_o a_o man_n certain_o here_o be_v two_o nature_n assert_v divine_a and_o human_a whence_o we_o say_v that_o as_o by_o his_o incarnation_n he_o be_v real_o man_n so_o as_o sure_o his_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n signify_v that_o he_o be_v real_o god_n before_o he_o become_v man_n as_o he_o be_v man_n after_o his_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n these_o expression_n conclude_v for_o both_o his_o deity_n and_o humanity_n and_o if_o
there_o be_v any_o difference_n the_o word_n for_o the_o first_o seem_v strong_a than_o those_o for_o the_o last_o for_o to_o be_v in_o the_o form_n be_v more_o than_o to_o be_v in_o the_o likeness_n because_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi esse_fw-la rei_fw-la a_o thing_n have_v be_v from_o its_o form_n or_o nature_n but_o he_o give_v sufficient_a and_o great_a demonstration_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o he_o to_o those_o among_o who_o he_o do_v converse_v socinian_n will_v wrest_v the_o text_n of_o luke_n 1.3_o 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o therefore_o that_o also_o which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o will_v have_v the_o particle_n therefore_o to_o signify_v the_o cause_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v that_o miraculous_a conception_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v deduce_v it_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o consequence_n or_o inference_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o word_n therefore_o and_o wherefore_o by_o which_o particle_n we_o usual_o draw_v conclusion_n from_o premise_n whether_o they_o be_v cause_n effect_n or_o sign_n or_o that_o which_o upon_o any_o other_o account_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v deduce_v therefrom_o and_o in_o this_o place_n out_o of_o the_o scope_n thereof_o it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v out_o of_o any_o circumstance_n that_o the_o conception_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o that_o manner_n of_o his_o conception_n for_o then_o for_o that_o same_o cause_n either_o christ_n will_v call_v himself_o or_o be_v call_v by_o other_o son_n of_o god_n else_o the_o angel_n prediction_n shall_v prove_v false_a by_o which_o reason_n he_o rather_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v than_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n even_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n which_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v true_a god_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n do_v import_n not_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v once_o or_o by_o some_o few_o son_n of_o god_n but_o always_o and_o general_o by_o all_o that_o shall_v own_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n beside_o this_o exposition_n of_o they_o they_o can_v bring_v no_o example_n to_o confirm_v it_o for_o in_o abundance_n of_o place_n we_o read_v christ_n to_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n but_o find_v none_o at_o all_o wherein_o he_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o angel_n do_v not_o say_v therefore_o he_o may_v happen_v to_o be_v but_o absolute_o and_o public_o declare_v he_o shall_v be_v call_v wherefore_o see_v he_o no_o where_n be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n we_o may_v necessary_o conclude_v he_o be_v not_o such_o in_o that_o sense_n to_o be_v call_v be_v sometime_o real_o to_o be_v as_o in_o that_o text_n 3.1_o text_n 1._o john_n 3.1_o behold_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v real_o be_v own_v and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n such_o as_o true_o we_o be_v be_v adopt_v in_o christ_n his_o true_a natural_a son_n the_o word_n holy_a use_v give_v a_o strong_a evidence_n that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n for_o a_o much_o better_a and_o high_a reason_n than_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n he_o shall_v be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v holy_a therefore_o not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o holiness_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o the_o virgin_n some_o holy_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o she_o that_o make_v the_o angel_n say_v therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o conception_n but_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v conceive_v though_o by_o the_o angel_n it_o be_v not_o express_v how_o great_a be_v that_o holiness_n we_o may_v well_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v that_o high_a and_o infinite_a holiness_n as_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n wherefore_o isaiah_n in_o his_o prophecy_n of_o he_o call_v he_o as_o already_o observe_v the_o mighty_a god_n elizabeth_n call_v he_o 1.43_o luke_n 1.43_o her_o lord_n the_o angel_n call_v he_o 2.11_o he_o chap._n 2.11_o saviour_n christ_n the_o lord_n and_o daniel_n 9.24_o daniel_n dan._n 9.24_o he_o be_v anoint_v the_o most_o holy_a before_o the_o wise_a man_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o which_o they_o be_v send_v to_o do_v and_o to_o that_o purpose_n guide_v by_o a_o star_n 11._o star_n mat._n 2.2_o 11._o and_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n 72.10_o prophecy_n psal_n 72.10_o offer_v he_o gift_n and_o present_n as_o to_o a_o king_n for_o under_o that_o name_n his_o birth_n be_v declare_v to_o they_o and_o promise_v therefore_o the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o holiness_n of_o god_n and_o of_o he_o who_o be_v by_o nature_n lord_n and_o king_n the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_z or_o also_o which_o follow_v therefore_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a but_o show_v a_o comparison_n and_o be_v relate_v not_o to_o the_o word_n call_v but_o to_o be_v bear_v and_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o only_o that_o word_n which_o from_o eternity_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o that_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n shall_v take_v human_a nature_n and_o be_v bear_v of_o thou_o and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o the_o virgin_n be_v to_o do_v namely_o that_o she_o shall_v conceive_v without_o man_n and_o conceive_v a_o man_n him_z who_o from_o eternity_n be_v according_a to_o divine_a nature_n the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v effect_v than_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_z unite_n human_a nature_n which_o be_v to_o be_v form_v out_o of_o her_o own_o blood_n and_o substance_n sanctify_v before_o and_o preserve_v from_o sin_n and_o corruption_n with_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n man_n must_v not_o think_v there_o be_v in_o scripture_n the_o least_o tittle_n or_o word_n without_o cause_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v and_o say_v nothing_o in_o vain_a another_o reason_n be_v the_o angel_n say_v christ_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o god_n the_o father_n now_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o conception_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v proper_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o of_o the_o father_n for_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v a_o person_n yet_o actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la be_v a_o rule_n in_o philosophy_n and_o this_o conceive_v be_v a_o act_n the_o holy_a ghost_n must_v be_v a_o person_n for_o i_o defy_v they_o to_o show_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v but_o by_o a_o person_n scripture_n in_o the_o quote_v place_n rom._n 1.3_o the_o question_n be_v about_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n exclude_v the_o flesh_n to_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o spirit_n but_o socinian_n will_v have_v it_o according_a to_o both_o yet_o s._n paul_n scope_n be_v to_o teach_v how_o he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o how_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o the_o first_o he_o explain_v himself_o when_o he_o say_v which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n as_o to_o be_v second_o he_o declare_v his_o meaning_n when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v declare_v son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n whence_o we_o may_v conclude_v he_o say_v christ_n to_o be_v call_v and_o real_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o to_o the_o spirit_n or_o else_o he_o have_v not_o sufficient_o declare_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a how_o he_o oppose_v the_o flesh_n to_o the_o spirit_n according_a to_o the_o first_o he_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o last_o he_o be_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n withal_o scripture_n will_v have_v such_o a_o son_n of_o god_n as_o be_v without_o father_n etc._n etc._n such_o as_o melchisedec_n no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o his_o father_n mother_n or_o genealogy_n
he_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v on_o earth_n but_o rather_o fall_v from_o heaven_n have_v neither_o begin_n of_o day_n nor_o end_v of_o life_n but_o make_v like_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o type_n show_v these_o attribute_n to_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o and_o true_a of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o can_v be_v otherwise_o understand_v then_o thus_o either_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v such_o a_o nature_n as_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n come_v and_o be_v derive_v from_o earthly_a and_o carnal_a parent_n without_o beginning_n or_o end_n and_o so_o eternal_a to_o all_o eternity_n such_o as_o be_v divine_a nature_n or_o else_o that_o both_o nature_n of_o christ_n divine_a and_o human_a be_v denote_v human_a without_o father_n upon_o earth_n divine_a without_o mother_n in_o heaven_n and_o either_o overthrow_v the_o imaginary_a notion_n of_o socinus_n of_o father_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n this_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o priesthood_n about_o which_o the_o question_n be_v not_o but_o about_o his_o origine_fw-la and_o genealogy_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v without_o father_n or_o mother_n not_o but_o that_o he_o have_v some_o only_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n nor_o description_n make_v of_o it_o for_o the_o greek_a word_n without_o genealogy_n signify_v not_o the_o genealogy_n itself_o but_o the_o description_n of_o it_o beside_o that_o the_o word_n without_o beginning_n of_o day_n or_o end_v of_o life_n may_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o priesthood_n wherefore_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v no_o beginning_n of_o day_n not_o but_o that_o he_o have_v but_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o to_o answer_v he_o who_o type_n he_o be_v day_n and_o life_n be_v not_o refer_v to_o a_o priesthood_n but_o to_o a_o be_v a_o person_n a_o existence_n and_o life_n the_o beginning_n or_o end_v whereof_o absolute_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v at_o all_o so_o then_o in_o this_o place_n the_o comparison_n be_v not_o about_o the_o priesthood_n but_o about_o the_o eternal_a person_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n priesthood_n have_v a_o beginning_n as_o be_v expressy_a set_v down_o in_o scripture_n 6._o scripture_n heb._n 5.5_o 6._o for_o he_o glorify_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o as_o he_o say_v also_o in_o another_o place_n thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n so_o then_o in_o that_o sense_n it_o can_v proper_o be_v apply_v to_o christ_n it_o be_v frivolous_a to_o say_v as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o any_o family_n for_o the_o apostle_n absolute_o speak_v of_o beginning_n of_o day_n not_o of_o a_o priesthood_n to_o speak_v absolute_o of_o a_o beginning_n and_o of_o a_o beginning_n of_o a_o family_n be_v two_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v to_o wrest_v the_o apostle_n sense_n and_o meaning_n and_o make_v he_o say_v a_o thing_n which_o he_o never_o intend_v we_o do_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o melchisedec_n and_o of_o christ_n but_o it_o must_v be_v own_v he_o also_o speak_v of_o other_o thing_n as_o of_o melchisedec_n be_v king_n of_o righteousness_n king_n of_o salem_n king_n of_o peace_n etc._n etc._n and_o his_o be_v without_o beginning_n of_o day_n or_o end_v of_o life_n relate_v to_o his_o person_n and_o life_n for_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o his_o birth_n or_o of_o his_o death_n though_o both_o besel_n he_o but_o from_o the_o eternity_n of_o his_o person_n the_o apostle_n infer_v the_o eternity_n of_o his_o priesthood_n so_o then_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o person_n of_o melchisedec_n the_o two_o last_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o temporal_a generation_n and_o birth_n of_o the_o virgin_n for_o two_o evangelist_n have_v write_v his_o genealogy_n but_o of_o his_o eternal_a generation_n and_o of_o this_o speak_v the_o prophet_n 53.8_o prophet_n isai_n 53.8_o who_o shall_v declare_v his_o generation_n a_o expression_n equivalent_a to_o this_o no_o man_n can_v it_o be_v eternal_a incomprehensible_a when_o our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n he_o be_v bear_v in_o time_n 4.4_o time_n gal._n 4.4_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o time_n be_v come_v as_o scripture_n call_v it_o now_o this_o parallel_n between_o the_o type_n and_o anti-type_n melchisedec_n and_o christ_n do_v not_o run_v upon_o our_o saviour_n birth_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o about_o his_o human_a nature_n but_o about_o something_o high_a his_o divinity_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o say_v melchisedec_n to_o be_v without_o father_n etc._n etc._n do_v ascend_v high_a say_v 7.3_o say_v heb._n 7.3_o but_o make_v like_o unto_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o more_o ●o_o prosecute_v this_o argument_n we_o must_v say_v how_o christ_n in_o his_o childhood_n even_o in_o the_o womb_n be_v god_n for_o he_o be_v immanuel_n god_n with_o we_o from_o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o thing_n be_v clear_a out_o of_o this_o that_o god_n be_v not_o flesh_n but_o spirit_n can_v have_v no_o carnal_a only_o spiritual_a son_n the_o true_a birth_n make_v the_o true_a son_n and_o this_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n those_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v carnal_a those_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spiritual_a for_o say_v christ_n 3.6_o joh._n 3.6_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v spirit_n now_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o carnal_a seed_n as_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o spiritual_a seed_n wherefore_o peter_n 25._o peter_n pet._n 1.23_o 24_o 25._o mention_v two_o seed_n one_o corruptible_a the_o other_o incorruptible_a that_o of_o the_o flesh_n as_o grass_n wither_v away_o the_o spiritual_a endure_v for_o ever_o if_o then_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o not_o long_o before_o we_o take_v notice_n the_o adversary_n will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v because_o he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o that_o birth_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v spiritual_a but_o not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o when_o scripture_n speak_v of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n in_o several_a place_n it_o make_v a_o restriction_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o a_o opposition_n to_o it_o according_o to_o the_o spirit_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o forequote_v place_n rom._n 1.3_o 4._o and_o chap._n 9.5_o thus_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n the_o word_n and_o flesh_n do_v signify_v two_o different_a principle_n distinguish_v and_o in_o opposition_n one_o to_o another_o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v 4.1_o say_v 1_o pet._n 3.18_o chap._n 4.1_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o again_o he_o have_v suffer_v for_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v in_o his_o human_a nature_n then_o in_o he_o be_v a_o nature_n in_o which_o he_o suffer_v not_o and_o 3.16_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_n be_v two_o different_a nature_n divine_a signify_v by_o the_o word_n god_n and_o humane_a by_o the_o flesh_n what_o mean_v those_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n 31._o peter_n act_n 2.30_o 31._o how_o god_n have_v swear_v unto_o david_n that_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o loin_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n he_o will_v raise_v up_o christ_n and_o that_o his_o flesh_n do_v not_o see_v corruption_n but_o to_o show_v that_o in_o christ_n be_v another_o be_v different_a from_o that_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v not_o david_n son_n thus_o s._n paul_n as_o already_o quote_v say_v god_n send_v his_o son_n in_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o be_v son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n and_o elsewhere_o 10.20_o elsewhere_o ephes_n 2.15_o colos_n 1.22_o heb._n 5.7_o ch._n 10.20_o have_v abolish_v in_o his_o flesh_n and_o you_o have_v be_v reconcile_v in_o th●●body_n of_o his_o flesh_n again_o who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o through_o the_o vail_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o flesh_n that_o visible_a veil_n do_v hide_v some_o invisible_a thing_n now_o i_o say_v it_o be_v in_o vain_a in_o scripture_n to_o see_v so_o often_o mention_v make_v of_o christ_n flesh_n if_o there_o be_v in_o he_o no_o other_o thing_n as_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o distinction_n thus_o when_o we_o speak_v
different_a thing_n tho'_o pertain_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_a or_o else_o every_o lord_n be_v a_o god_n thus_o a_o husband_n be_v a_o god_n unto_o his_o wife_n because_o sarah_n call_v abraham_n her_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a servant_n be_v his_o god_n because_o he_o call_v he_o his_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o the_o vineyard_n be_v the_o god_n of_o the_o vineyard_n because_o call_v its_o lord_n and_o many_o more_o such_o instance_n and_o i_o shall_v illustrate_v the_o thing_n by_o a_o trivial_a say_v among_o we_o a_o servant_n may_v say_v his_o master_n be_v lord_n but_o not_o god_n at_o home_n the_o text_n that_o say_v 23._o say_v 1_o john_n 2.22_o 23._o who_o be_v a_o liar_n but_o he_o that_o deni_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n he_o be_v antichrist_n that_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n whosoever_o deni_v the_o son_n the_o same_o have_v not_o the_o father_n these_o word_n do_v import_v how_o he_o that_o deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n do_v thereby_o deny_v the_o son_n not_o that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n do_v formal_o signify_v the_o same_o in_o themselves_o but_o because_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o son_n of_o god_n do_v meet_v in_o one_o person_n so_o that_o none_o but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v christ_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n withal_o after_o this_o socinian_n way_n of_o argue_v it_o will_v follow_v in_o this_o text_n that_o the_o name_n christ_n father_n and_o son_n do_v signify_v the_o same_o for_o here_o the_o apostle_n offer_v two_o proposition_n the_o first_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n that_o deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o last_o he_o be_v antichrist_n that_o deny_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o adversary_n make_v they_o both_o equivalent_a for_o in_o both_o be_v the_o same_o object_n of_o denial_n whence_o they_o infer_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o same_o signification_n but_o according_a to_o this_o kule_n it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o christ_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n signify_v the_o same_o because_o in_o the_o first_o proposition_n christ_n be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o denial_n and_o in_o the_o last_o the_o father_n and_o son_n together_o any_o one_o may_v see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o because_o christ_n to_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n about_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o father_n which_o sanctification_n be_v the_o anoint_v speak_v of_o by_o peter_n 10.38_o peter_n act_n 10.38_o wherefore_o they_o will_v have_v that_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o that_o divine_a filiation_n but_o the_o sanctification_n and_o anoint_v than_o the_o cause_n by_o the_o angel_n give_v in_o 1.35_o in_o luke_n 1.35_o scripture_n be_v false_a so_o then_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o extraordinary_a birth_n and_o of_o his_o kingly_a office_n as_o socinus_n say_v but_o for_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n which_o that_o text_n of_o john_n 10._o be_v not_o against_o for_o in_o that_o place_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o give_v in_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v son_n of_o god_n but_o only_o go_v about_o to_o refute_v the_o slander_n of_o blasphemy_n by_o the_o jew_n cast_v upon_o he_o not_o by_o a_o argument_n à_fw-fr pari_fw-la take_v from_o equal_a thing_n but_o from_o the_o lesser_a to_o the_o great_a he_o have_v say_v v._n 30._o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o thereby_o express_o assert_v his_o consubstantiality_n and_o oneness_n of_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n whereupon_o they_o take_v stone_n to_o stone_n he_o because_o of_o that_o pretend_a blasphemy_n in_o that_o he_o be_v man_n make_v himself_o god_n which_o objection_n he_o answer_v with_o a_o instance_n from_o less_o to_o great_a thus_o if_o those_o be_v without_o blasphemy_n call_v god_n who_o exercise_v a_o divine_a office_n in_o their_o rule_n and_o judge_v of_o man_n much_o more_o and_o upon_o a_o better_a account_n may_v christ_n the_o messiab_n from_o eternity_n beget_v by_o the_o father_n and_o in_o time_n send_v down_o from_o heaven_n into_o the_o world_n be_v call_v god_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n nor_o have_v you_o any_o just_a cause_n of_o ston_a i_o because_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n one_o with_o the_o father_n the_o name_n son_n of_o god_n relate_v to_o the_o eternal_a generation_n by_o and_o consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n therefore_o not_o a_o name_n of_o office_n but_o of_o nature_n and_o person_n and_o the_o name_n christ_n and_o son_n agree_v as_o to_o the_o material_a in_o one_o person_n but_o not_o in_o the_o formal_a the_o name_n son_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o that_o of_o christ_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o temporal_a anoint_v to_o a_o office_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o retain_v the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o the_o metaphorical_a till_o we_o see_v cause_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o this_o we_o leave_v for_o they_o to_o prove_v how_o because_o magistrate_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o office_n be_v call_v child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a therefore_o not_o because_o of_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o coessentiality_n with_o the_o father_n but_o for_o his_o royal_a dignity_n the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v short_a we_o have_v other_o text_n to_o prove_v how_o the_o name_n god_n son_n signify_v some_o essential_a thing_n in_o christ_n as_o that_o heretofore_o quote_v christ_n be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n the_o flesh_n signify_v his_o humanity_n as_o do_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n his_o divinity_n for_o we_o see_v 9.24_o see_v dan._n 9.24_o to_o anoint_v the_o most_o holy_a do_v denote_v by_o the_o most_o holy_a his_o divine_a person_n and_o by_o to_o anoint_v his_o office_n of_o mediator_n so_o we_o have_v that_o of_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n that_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o angel_n meaning_n be_v that_o in_o christ_n conception_n the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o end_n he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v may_v be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n but_o if_o that_o name_n have_v relate_v only_o to_o the_o office_n and_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v invest_v with_o it_o have_v be_v a_o mere_a man_n no_o need_n of_o that_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o conception_n now_o the_o angel_n call_v holy_a that_o which_o it_o essential_a in_o christ_n he_o be_v holy_a before_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v and_o that_o essential_a holy_a thing_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v not_o that_o man_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v not_o holy_a in_o the_o concrete_a but_o holy_a in_o the_o abstract_n withal_o see_v in_o baptism_n the_o word_n son_n do_v not_o in_o christ_n signify_v his_o office_n but_o his_o nature_n for_o the_o name_n father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o denote_v any_o office_n but_o person_n so_o in_o christ_n it_o signify_v his_o divine_a nature_n not_o his_o office_n all_o this_o may_v also_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o other_o text_n as_o this_o 3.16_o this_o john_n 3.16_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n etc._n etc._n compare_v with_o 8.32_o with_o rom._n 8.32_o he_o that_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o wherein_o god_n love_n towards_o the_o world_n and_o we_o be_v so_o high_o commend_v which_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o office_n lay_v upon_o christ_n will_v come_v very_o short_a of_o that_o inflnite_a love_n of_o god_n which_o as_o paul_n say_v 18._o say_v ephes_n 3.19_o 18._o pass_v knowledge_n and_o give_v it_o the_o four_o dimension_n breadth_n length_n depth_n and_o height_n but_o to_o say_v that_o god_n spare_v not_o his_o own_o belove_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o deliver_v he_o to_o death_n this_o be_v love_n indeed_o the_o same_o we_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o this_o 5.8_o heb._n 5.8_o that_o though_o he_o be_v a_o son_n yet_o learn_v he_o obedience_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o will_v sacrifice_v his_o son_n to_o the_o safety_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n have_v do_v it_o
be_v here_o say_v to_o reign_v the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a but_o to_o reign_v belong_v to_o king_n and_o if_o we_o go_v back_o to_o v._o 15._o this_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n who_o be_v call_v 6._o call_v ch._n 19.16_o verse_n 6._o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o if_o we_o go_v back_o to_o v._o 6._o we_o may_v hear_v alleluia_n the_o reason_n be_v for_o the_o lord_n god_n omnipotent_a reign_v and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o read_v of_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o i_o suppose_v no_o man_n doubt_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o what_o be_v the_o song_n great_a and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n lord_n god_n almighty_a he_o be_v the_o almighty_a god_n and_o certain_o we_o have_v as_o many_o evidence_n of_o his_o omnipotency_n as_o there_o be_v miracle_n wrought_v by_o he_o and_o if_o god_n the_o father_n be_v almighty_a as_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n must_v also_o be_v almighty_a 5.19_o almighty_a john_n 5.19_o for_o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v these_o also_o do_v the_o son_n likewise_o unchangeableness_n belong_v to_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n immutability_n christ_n immutability_n but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o say_v the_o psalmist_n 102.27_o and_o christ_n be_v unchangeable_a in_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n 35._o promise_n matt._n 24_o 35._o heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v away_o but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o for_o 1.20_o for_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o he_o be_v yea_o and_o in_o he_o amen_o and_o 19.11_o and_o rev._n 19.11_o he_o be_v call_v faithful_a and_o true_a other_o name_n and_o attribute_n there_o be_v in_o scripture_n which_o though_o not_o incommunicable_a yet_o be_v so_o eminent_o speak_v of_o the_o divinity_n that_o they_o be_v almost_o equivalent_a to_o it_o so_o that_o they_o be_v fix_v in_o god_n as_o their_o spring_n and_o in_o the_o creature_n but_o detivative_o and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o small_a drop_n in_o comparison_n with_o the_o vast_a ocean_n and_o these_o be_v attribute_v unto_o christ_n by_o way_n of_o excellency_n do_v not_o only_o illustrate_v but_o also_o prove_v his_o divinity_n i_o shall_v speak_v but_o few_o word_n about_o they_o the_o first_o be_v the_o high_a which_o indeed_o i_o find_v in_o scripture_n never_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o man_n in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n this_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v say_v 20._o say_v gen._n 14.18_o 19_o 20._o melchizedec_n be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n equivalent_a to_o the_o word_n high_o and_o in_o the_o two_o follow_a verse_n it_o be_v repeat_v so_o that_o no_o less_o than_o thrice_o the_o name_n most_o high_a be_v set_v down_o which_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n and_o may_v be_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a trinity_n well_o this_o name_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o what_o zacharias_n say_v of_o his_o son_n john_n 1.76_o john_n luke_n 1.76_o and_o thou_o child_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a for_o thou_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n so_o the_o attribute_n be_v give_v to_o the_o person_n therein_o speak_v of_o which_o no_o man_n may_v question_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o multitude_n and_o approve_v by_o he_o upon_o his_o entrance_n into_o jerusa●em_n for_o they_o cry_v say_v 21.9_o say_v mat._n 21.9_o hosanna_n to_o the_o son_n of_o david_n hosanna_n in_o the_o high_a and_o though_o as_o i_o say_v this_o be_v simple_o proper_a to_o god_n and_o 6.15_o and_o 1_o tim._n 6.15_o belong_v only_o to_o he_o yet_o be_v join_v with_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v attribute_v unto_o christ_n 16._o christ_n act_n 16._o these_o man_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n which_o show_v unto_o we_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n servant_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o title_n which_o paul_n do_v usual_o take_v upon_o he_o who_o this_o most_o high_a god_n be_v we_o read_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o name_n he_o command_v the_o spirit_n to_o go_v out_o which_o he_o do_v the_o same_o hour_n the_o word_n the_o bless_a with_o a_o article_n do_v as_o i_o have_v have_v occasion_n to_o show_v signify_v the_o same_o as_o god_n and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 17._o god_n psal_n 72_o 17._o all_o nation_n shall_v call_v he_o bless_v and_o the_o multitude_n in_o the_o forequote_v place_v call_v he_o so_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o that_o note_a place_n the_o apostle_n join_v both_o bless_v and_o god_n and_o give_v he_o 9.5_o he_o rom._n 9.5_o who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o paul_n say_v not_o let_v he_o be_v in_o a_o way_n of_o wish_n and_o desire_n nor_o he_o shall_v be_v as_o if_o then_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o but_o only_o to_o come_v but_o he_o say_v he_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o thereby_o mean_v his_o be_v and_o nature_n in_o scripture_n 71.23_o scripture_n isai_n 14._o psal_n 71.23_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a one_o be_v give_v to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n who_o israel_n do_v worship_n this_o also_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n 16.10_o christ_n psal_n 16.10_o thou_o will_v not_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n and_o peter_n 3.14_o peter_n act_n 2.27_o and_o 3.14_o do_v certain_o declare_v those_o word_n to_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o christ_n the_o angel_n say_v to_o mary_n 1.35_o mary_n luke_n 1.35_o therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n or_o holy_a one_o for_o it_o be_v a_o person_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v holiness_n be_v his_o attribute_n and_o it_o be_v 1.4_o be_v rom._n 1.4_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n that_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n he_o not_o only_o be_v holy_a but_o also_o holiness_n itself_o in_o the_o abstract_n to_o he_o sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n the_o seraphim_n 3._o seraphim_n isai_n 6.1_o 2_o 3._o cry_v holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o whole_a earth_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n which_o be_v by_o john_n 12.41_o john_n joh._n 12.41_o apply_v unto_o christ_n these_o thing_n say_v esaias_n when_o he_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o and_o 4.8_o and_o rev._n 4.8_o the_o four_o beast_n ●est_v not_o day_n and_o night_n say_v holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n almighty_a which_o be_v and_o be_v and_o be_v to_o come_v which_o last_o be_v in_o s._n john_n stile_n a_o description_n of_o the_o first_o these_o word_n speak_v to_o he_o who_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o i_o hope_v none_o will_v deny_v christ_n be_v sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n as_o absolute_o express_v in_o several_a place_n of_o this_o book_n so_o daniel_n 9.24_o daniel_n dan._n 9.24_o call_v he_o the_o most_o holy_a other_o name_n and_o title_n scripture_n do_v appropriate_a unto_o christ_n which_o be_v all_o strong_a demonstration_n of_o what_o he_o be_v namely_o the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n which_o i_o only_o shall_v name_v for_o indeed_o it_o will_v be_v almost_o a_o endless_a work_n to_o insist_v upon_o all_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n upon_o the_o matter_n he_o be_v then_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n rev._n 17.14_o and_o 19.16_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o glory_n psal_n 24.7_o 10._o compare_v with_o 1_o cor._n 2.8_o lord_n of_o david_n psal_n 110._o with_o matth._n 22.44_o where_o it_o be_v observable_a how_o the_o same_o name_n give_v to_o the_o lord_n speak_v ●f_n be_v also_o give_v to_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o as_o equal_o belong_v to_o both_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o be_v in_o several_a place_n of_o scripture_n call_v one_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 8.6_o and_o lord_n of_o all_o act_v 10.36_o because_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o john_n 1.3_o so_o the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n because_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o act_v 4.12_o let_v special_a notice_n be_v take_v of_o psal_n 68_o where_n speak_v of_o christ_n according_a to_o paul_n interpretation_n ephes_n 4.8_o he_o among_o other_o high_a and_o great_a name_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n god_n the_o god_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o such_o more_o which_o certain_o do_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o true_a essential_a god_n in_o scripture_n the_o name_n of_o lord_n god_n king_n absolute_o take_v or_o with_o the_o distinction_n
so_o call_v as_o for_o we_o we_o own_o but_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n who_o he_o give_v proper_a attribute_n unto_o the_o one_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o the_o one_o lord_n be_v jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o for_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o he_o of_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v so_o all_o thing_n be_v by_o he_o by_o who_o they_o be_v make_v so_o then_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v by_o christ_n he_o must_v be_v before_o all_o not_o only_o in_o dignity_n but_o also_o in_o time_n out_o of_o this_o text_n we_o learn_v first_o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o lord_n even_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o exclude_v god_n the_o father_n from_o be_v lord_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n even_o the_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o exclude_v the_o lord_n jesus_n from_o be_v god_n also_o and_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v so_o but_o withal_o he_o show_v how_o it_o be_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o preposition_n of_o and_o by_o here_o use_v all_o thing_n be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n all_o thing_n have_v the_o same_o principle_n and_o cause_n but_o somewhat_o in_o a_o different_a manner_n all_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o father_n but_o by_o the_o son_n which_o in_o the_o work_n of_o make_v all_o thing_n show_v a_o sort_n of_o distribution_n thereof_o in_o the_o way_n of_o it_o and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o subordination_n if_o i_o may_v so_o call_v it_o between_o the_o two_o person_n as_o if_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v precise_o the_o adequate_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o the_o person_n of_o one_o god_n by_o the_o person_n of_o one_o lord_n and_o the_o person_n of_o one_o lord_n of_o the_o person_n of_o one_o god_n for_o if_o all_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o one_o god_n by_o one_o lord_n but_o some_o of_o one_o god_n other_o of_o one_o lord_n than_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o word_n of_o and_o by_o with_o the_o order_n and_o coherence_n between_o one_o lord_n and_o one_o god_n will_v fall_v and_o so_o the_o assertion_n of_o one_o god_n will_v be_v false_a because_o there_o will_v be_v two_o equal_o first_o and_o immediate_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o reason_n for_o the_o one_o god_n be_v he_o who_o be_v the_o supreme_a cause_n not_o of_o something_n only_o but_o of_o all_o and_o the_o one_o lord_n be_v he_o by_o who_o not_o only_o some_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v and_o what_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v it_o do_v appear_v out_o of_o all_o the_o text_n i_o upon_o this_o point_n have_v make_v use_n of_o be_v compare_v together_o which_o can_v make_v the_o thing_n plain_a enough_o to_o any_o unbiased_a and_o unprejudiced_a man_n if_o here_o christ_n be_v exclude_v from_o be_v god_n by_o the_o same_o reason_n shall_v the_o father_n be_v exclude_v from_o be_v lord_n but_o it_o seem_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n can_v stop_v the_o boundless_a impiety_n of_o man_n who_o with_o their_o restriction_n will_v as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v confine_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o their_o own_o sense_n for_o upon_o the_o text_n they_o say_v by_o all_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v only_o those_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o christianity_n as_o such_o which_o be_v a_o mere_a invention_n of_o socinus_n brain_n and_o not_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o apostle_n however_o rather_o than_o to_o be_v mute_a something_o he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o word_n all_o can_v have_v no_o relation_n to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o he_o that_o be_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n wherein_o he_o go_v upon_o his_o wrong_a principle_n as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o at_o all_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o mary_n for_o though_o we_o own_o that_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n christ_n be_v not_o proper_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o she_o yet_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v as_o according_o have_v be_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v and_o as_o to_o that_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a be_v of_o his_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o he_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o but_o this_o dominion_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v endeavour_v to_o reduce_v not_o only_o within_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n but_o also_o within_o that_o of_o his_o resurrection_n but_o therein_o he_o make_v a_o confusion_n between_o christ_n purchase_a and_o his_o natural_a dominion_n which_o ought_v well_o to_o be_v distinguish_v the_o first_o be_v indeed_o after_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n ground_v upon_o our_o redemption_n as_o former_o the_o special_a right_n and_o dominion_n of_o god_n over_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v entail_v upon_o his_o have_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o the_o egyptian_a bondage_n but_o though_o he_o have_v not_o deliver_v they_o yet_o still_o he_o have_v be_v their_o lord_n upon_o another_o and_o more_o ancient_a account_n thus_o before_o christ_n redeem_v we_o by_o his_o death_n he_o have_v a_o natural_a dominion_n over_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v our_o lord_n because_o we_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n before_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n by_o a_o special_a purchase_n for_o before_o he_o humble_v himself_o and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n son_n of_o and_o equal_a with_o god_n it_o be_v say_v indeed_o 14.9_o rom._n 14.9_o that_o christ_n both_o die_v and_o rise_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o live_a because_o there_o the_o question_n be_v about_o his_o acquire_v dominion_n but_o in_o this_o place_n both_o be_v speak_v of_o for_o christ_n be_v oppose_v unto_o idol_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o both_o his_o dominion_n of_o which_o both_o the_o ground_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v by_o he_o not_o because_o he_o be_v lord_n but_o rather_o he_o be_v lord_n because_o all_o thing_n be_v by_o he_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o 10.36_o act_n 10.36_o the_o apostle_n say_v absolute_o and_o without_o restriction_n of_o who_o and_o by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n yet_o they_o will_v have_v it_o reduce_v only_o to_o christian_n as_o such_o because_o it_o be_v say_v to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o who_o or_o by_o who_o we_o have_v all_o thing_n or_o all_o thing_n be_v we_o but_o bare_o and_o general_o of_o who_o and_o by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n without_o any_o particular_a relation_n to_o christian_n but_o this_o will_v follow_v that_o if_o according_a to_o the_o several_a relation_n we_o stand_v in_o we_o shall_v have_v some_o thing_n of_o one_o and_o other_o of_o another_o namely_o such_o as_o creature_n such_o as_o man_n and_o such_o as_o christian_n we_o will_v divide_v the_o supreme_a cause_n so_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v only_o one_o but_o many_o thus_o not_o only_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n but_o many_o quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o apostle_n say_v beside_o that_o if_o such_o a_o restriction_n be_v put_v upon_o the_o word_n one_o lord_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n the_o same_o must_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o former_a one_o god_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n whereby_o they_o shall_v presume_v upon_o the_o father_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o son_n for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o both_o so_o that_o both_o aught_o either_o general_o or_o particular_o to_o be_v take_v which_o how_o presumptuous_a a_o attempt_n this_o be_v let_v any_o impartial_a man_n judge_v not_o only_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n but_o also_o that_o of_o divine_a providence_n that_o be_v preservation_n and_o govern_n of_o the_o world_n be_v attribute_v unto_o christ_n 1●_n colos_n 1_o 1●_n this_o be_v of_o two_o kind_n ordinary_a and_o miraculous_a the_o first_o speak_v of_o when_o it_o be_v say_v and_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v for_o in_o the_o forego_n verse_n have_v say_v by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v in_o this_o he_o add_v by_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v for_o he_o not_o only_o create_v but_o also_o preserve_v all_o thing_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v else_o where_o all_o thing_n be_v uphold_v by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n 1.3_o heb_fw-mi 1.3_o in_o which_o place_n as_o in_o the_o forego_n be_v show_v how_o he_o who_o make_v the_o world_n do_v also_o preserve_v the_o same_o the_o two_o go_v together_o and_o be_v inseparable_a and_o in_o the_o preservation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o work_n of_o nature_n by_o he_o create_v
he_o together_o with_o the_o father_n 5.17_o john_n 5.17_o do_v work_v hitherto_o thus_o spiritual_a creature_n be_v preserve_v in_o their_o individuum_fw-la and_o corporeal_a in_o their_o species_n he_o give_v food_n raiment_n and_o other_o necessary_n unto_o all_o dispose_v of_o time_n and_o season_n cause_n his_o sun_n to_o shine_v send_v rain_n etc._n etc._n without_o which_o concourse_n of_o he_o the_o world_n will_v soon_o come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o this_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o a_o second_o creation_n the_o exercise_v of_o a_o miraculous_a providence_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o work_n which_o manifest'_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o true_a essential_a god_n for_o such_o thing_n be_v beyond_o and_o above_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n and_o a_o property_n of_o the_o true_a lord_n god_n of_o israel_n who_o only_o do_v wondrous_a thing_n and_o this_o our_o saviour_n do_v show_v upon_o some_o extraordinary_a occasion_n in_o matter_n of_o nature_n 72.18_o psal_n 72.18_o and_o also_o of_o grace_n as_o to_o the_o first_o when_o he_o change_v water_n into_o wine_n rebuke_v the_o wind_n and_o the_o sea_n give_v the_o blind_a sight_n make_v the_o lame_a to_o walk_v ●2_n matth._n 9.33_o john_n 9_o ●2_n cure_v disease_n heal_v distemper_n virtue_n daily_o issue_v out_o of_o he_o which_o make_v people_n wonder_n and_o admire_v because_o such_o thing_n have_v never_o be_v so_o see_v in_o israel_n nor_o since_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o to_o say_v that_o a_o great_a prophet_n be_v rise_v up_o among_o we_o and_o that_o god_n have_v visit_v his_o people_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v fill_v up_o with_o such_o miracle_n which_o he_o do_v in_o all_o kind_n and_o of_o what_o nature_n soever_o be_v their_o infirmity_n and_o disease_n he_o cure_v they_o all_o and_o as_o peter_n say_v be_v approve_v of_o god_n by_o miracle_n 2.22_o acts._n 2.22_o wonder_n and_o sign_n and_o in_o this_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o own_o he_o give_v other_o power_n to_o do_v the_o like_a but_o they_o who_o he_o give_v that_o power_n to_o exercise_v it_o not_o in_o their_o or_o any_o other_o but_o in_o his_o name_n 10.9_o matth._n 10_o 1._o mark_n 16.17_o 18._o luke_n 10.9_o to_o show_v how_o the_o power_n of_o work_a miracle_n be_v only_o in_o and_o from_o he_o in_o my_o name_n they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n etc._n etc._n and_o work_v miracle_n by_o my_o power_n and_o authority_n thus_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n be_v again_o return_v with_o joy_n say_v 10.17_o luke_n 10.17_o lord_n even_o the_o devil_n be_v subject_a unto_o we_o through_o thy_o name_n thus_o peter_n have_v heal_v the_o lame_a man_n say_v to_o the_o people_n which_o run_v great_o wonder_v why_o look_v you_o so_o earnest_o on_o we_o as_o though_o by_o our_o own_o power_n or_o holiness_n 3.12.16_o acts._n 3.12.16_o we_o have_v make_v this_o man_n to_o walk_v man_n be_v so_o apt_a to_o look_v upon_o and_o fix_v on_o second_o cause_n and_o instrument_n he_o first_o go_v about_o to_o remove_v those_o thought_n out_o of_o their_o head_n he_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o miracle_n christ_n name_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o name_n have_v make_v this_o man_n strong_a which_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n before_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o council_n they_o solemn_o declare_v 10._o chap._n 4_o 10._o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o all_o and_o to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n who_o you_o crucify_v by_o he_o do_v this_o man_n stand_v here_o before_o you_o whole_a and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v to_o a_o certain_a man_n aeneas_n 9.34_o chap._n 9.34_o jesus_n christ_n make_v thou_o whole_a hereby_o i_o show_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o spring_n of_o miracle_n which_o be_v do_v in_o his_o name_n as_o before_o he_o wrought_v they_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o name_n whereby_o his_o divinity_n be_v evidence_v the_o disciple_n can_v not_o at_o all_o time_n work_v miracle_n but_o christ_n can_v lord_n say_v the_o man_n if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v mare_n i_o clean_o 5.21_o matth._n 8_o 2._o john_n 5.21_o and_o he_o quicken_v who_o he_o will_v so_o he_o answer_v the_o man_n i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_a and_o immediate_o he_o be_v cleanse_v one_o thing_n more_o must_v be_v observe_v upon_o this_o how_o christ_n do_v miracle_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n which_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o say_v of_o any_o man_n be●●ase_v it_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o 16.4_o prov._n 16.4_o to_o make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o thus_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n after_o his_o first_o miracle_n it_o be_v say_v 2.11_o john_n 2.11_o this_o beginning_n of_o miracle_n do_v jesus_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n and_o manifest_v forth_o his_o glory_n thus_o he_o say_v himself_o that_o the_o sickness_n of_o lazarus_n be_v yeor_fw-la the_o glory_n of_o god_n 9.3_o john_n 11.4_o chap._n 9.3_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o and_o so_o be_v the_o man_n be_v bear_v blind_a that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o he_o that_o be_v that_o in_o give_v he_o his_o sight_n he_o may_v therein_o be_v glorify_v as_o among_o miracle_n raise_v one_o from_o the_o dead_a be_v the_o most_o conspicuous_a so_o therein_o at_o several_a time_n the_o lord_n jesus_n high_o manifest_v his_o own_o divine_a power_n but_o in_o none_o so_o much_o as_o when_o he_o raise_v himself_o for_o when_o he_o by_o himself_o have_v purge_v our_o sin_n 10.18_o heb._n 1.3_o john_n 10.18_o he_o not_o only_a rose_n again_o from_o the_o dead_a but_o also_o sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a no_o man_n say_v he_o take_v away_o my_o life_n from_o i_o but_o i_o lay_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o i_o see_v so_o much_o of_o majesty_n in_o those_o word_n and_o they_o be_v speak_v with_o so_o much_o assurance_n that_o therein_o i_o perceive_v the_o character_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o nature_n i_o join_v they_o together_o for_o i_o take_v they_o to_o be_v inseparable_a here_o be_v the_o triumph_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 15._o colos_n 2.14_o 15._o when_o not_o only_o he_o have_v blot_v out_o the_o hand_n write_v of_o ordinance_n that_o be_v against_o we_o and_o nail_v it_o to_o his_o cross_n but_o also_o have_v spoil_v principality_n and_o power_n he_o make_v a_o show_n of_o they_o open_o triumph_v over_o they_o in_o it_o for_o all_o his_o evemy_n and_o we_o receive_v their_o mortal_a wound_n and_o lay_v dead_a under_o his_o cross_n the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n etc._n 1_o john_n 3.8_o hos_fw-la 13.14_o 1_o cor._n 15.54_o 55_o 56_o etc._n etc._n that_o be_v sin_n he_o destroy_v and_o invisible_o satan_n be_v crucify_v with_o he_o o_o death_n he_o be_v thy_o plague_n o_o grave_n he_o be_v thy_o destruction_n he_o conquer_v they_o all_o and_o thereby_o death_n which_o be_v the_o last_o enemy_n be_v by_o his_o resurrection_n swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n after_o his_o resurrection_n peter_n assert_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v have_v be_v otherwise_o or_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v of_o death_n whence_o paul_n exalt_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n 1.4_o acts._n 2.14_o ephes_n 1.19_o 20._o rom._n 1.4_o which_o be_v wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a which_o same_o efficacy_n be_v elsewhere_o attribute_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n that_o be_v to_o the_o divinity_n in_o the_o son_n distinguish_v from_o his_o humanity_n all_o which_o agree_v with_o what_o our_o saviour_n have_v foretell_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n 2.19.21_o john_n 2.19.21_o destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o understand_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o body_n he_o rise_v not_o to_o be_v but_o because_o he_o be_v god_n thus_o much_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o nature_n but_o christ_n do_v also_o work_n of_o grace_n all_o understand_v under_o the_o name_n of_o redemption_n which_o have_v two_o part_n impetration_n or_o purchase_n and_o application_n through_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n he_o have_v fullfil_v the_o law_n for_o we_o and_o redeem_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n have_v full_o satisfy_v his_o justice_n and_o reconcile_v we_o unto_o he_o he_o have_v obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o a_o sufficient_a atonement_n he_o make_v for_o the_o same_o through_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n he_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n show_v what_o he_o be_v at_o the_o come_n out_o of_o his_o
jew_n in_o his_o nature_n and_o power_n with_o make_v a_o parallel_n between_o the_o father_n and_o himself_o the_o more_o because_o he_o use_v not_o a_o pronoun_n relative_a but_o possessive_a not_o the_o father_n but_o my_o father_n my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v not_o the_o father_n that_o be_v a_o common_a father_n as_o god_n be_v to_o all_o but_o my_o father_n in_o a_o most_o special_a and_o true_a manner_n who_o have_v communicate_v his_o nature_n unto_o i_o now_o that_o equality_n with_o the_o father_n he_o on_o another_o account_n do_v insist_v upon_o but_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o he_o make_v not_o himself_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n which_o certain_o he_o will_v have_v do_v if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v true_a and_o only_o a_o mistake_n in_o they_o and_o thereby_o he_o can_v have_v calm_v their_o rage_n on_o the_o contrary_n he_o speak_v to_o confirm_v this_o equality_n of_o he_o with_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n manifest_v in_o his_o work_n one_o whereof_o upon_o occasion_n be_v the_o restore_v the_o impotent_a man_n that_o have_v the_o infirmity_n for_o 38_o year_n to_o the_o use_n of_o his_o limb_n and_o perfect_a health_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v to_o have_v be_v do_v by_o a_o divine_a power_n now_o none_o but_o god_n can_v have_v a_o power_n equal_a with_o god_n for_o god_n power_n be_v infinite_a but_o that_o of_o any_o creature_n be_v finite_a and_o so_o there_o be_v no_o equality_n between_o finite_a and_o infinite_a this_o equality_n of_o power_n and_o work_v be_v here_o clear_o demonstrate_v for_o what_o thing_n soever_o the_o father_n do_v these_o also_o do_v the_o son_n likewise_o that_o be_v the_o father_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o the_o son_n do_v also_o and_o this_o he_o instance_v in_o the_o case_n of_o raise_v the_o dead_a which_o none_o but_o a_o divine_a and_o infinite_a power_n can_v effect_v for_o as_o the_o father_n raise_v up_o the_o dead_a and_o quicken_v they_o even_o so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v that_o be_v without_o exception_n he_o can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v now_o it_o be_v a_o attribute_n of_o god_n 135.6_o psal_n 115.3_o and_o 135.6_o to_o do_v what_o it_o please_v he_o in_o heaven_n in_o earth_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n because_o the_o jew_n believe_v not_o our_o saviour_n to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n he_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n go_v often_o about_o both_o in_o his_o discourse_n and_o work_n to_o insinuate_v into_o they_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o in_o this_o place_n he_o press_v it_o much_o upon_o they_o both_o by_o what_o i_o already_o say_v and_o by_o what_o he_o add_v in_o v._o 22._o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o the_o son_n and_o the_o end_n which_o in_o so_o do_v the_o father_n and_o he_o in_o declare_v it_o propose_v unto_o themselves_o be_v this_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n as_o the_o son_n in_o nature_n and_o power_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n so_o he_o ought_v equal_o to_o be_v honour_v or_o worship_v as_o the_o father_n be_v and_o this_o divine_a honour_n be_v so_o equal_o due_a to_o both_o that_o he_o which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n can_v and_o will_v not_o be_v honour_v that_o be_v worship_v without_o he_o for_o honour_v render_v unto_o god_n be_v the_o same_o as_o religious_a worship_n the_o son_n must_v be_v honour_v in_o the_o same_o nature_n manner_n and_o degree_n as_o the_o father_n be_v one_o will_v think_v this_o to_o be_v plain_a and_o clear_a enough_o beyond_o all_o exception_n yet_o they_o cavil_v thus_o the_o word_n as_o do_v not_o import_v a_o equal_a honour_n but_o only_o a_o likeness_n and_o this_o they_o go_v about_o to_o confirm_v out_o of_o two_o place_n the_o first_o be_v every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o 1.15_o 1_o joh._n 3.3_o 1_o pet._n 1.15_o purify_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a the_o other_o be_v but_o as_o he_o which_o have_v call_v you_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v you_o holy_a in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n we_o answer_v first_o in_o the_o text_n of_o peter_n the_o word_n as_o be_v not_o sicut_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o secundum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v a_o preposition_n not_o a_o adverb_n the_o word_n as_o do_v not_o always_o signify_v a_o similitude_n but_o some_o time_n be_v a_o particle_n of_o causality_n thus_o in_o the_o gospel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1.14_o joh._n 1.14_o the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v that_o be_v because_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n so_o in_o another_o place_n 3.18_o 2_o cor._n 3.18_o we_o all_o be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n even_o as_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n sometime_o the_o word_n like_o signify_v equality_n 1.1_o 2_o pet._n 1.1_o thus_o the_o like_a precious_a faith_n not_o only_o of_o similitude_n but_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n equal_o precious_a in_o the_o two_o object_v place_n and_o in_o our_o text_n there_o be_v indeed_o duty_n express_v but_o different_a in_o that_o of_o john_n here_o it_o be_v in_o relation_n to_o god_n in_o the_o other_o as_o to_o ourselves_o the_o first_o do_v regard_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o other_o holiness_n in_o ourselves_o in_o our_o text_n a_o parity_n and_o equality_n be_v imply_v which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o other_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o sense_n be_v ground_v upon_o two_o thing_n first_o of_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o those_o place_n second_o of_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n to_o know_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n we_o now_o be_v upon_o one_o must_v go_v back_o to_o verse_n 18._o the_o cause_n of_o the_o jew_n hatred_n and_o seek_v to_o kill_v our_o saviour_n be_v because_o he_o make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n which_o he_o to_o show_v they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o take_v exception_n against_o it_o as_o we_o say_v before_o prove_v it_o by_o a_o equality_n of_o power_n in_o raise_v the_o dead_a and_o of_o judge_v the_o world_n as_o to_o this_o last_o he_o go_v further_a for_o he_o say_v the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n unto_o he_o but_o what_o do_v all_o this_o aim_n at_o the_o scope_n be_v to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n god_n the_o father_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o honour_v his_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v he_o without_o any_o difference_n because_o his_o son_n be_v equal_a with_o he_o and_o this_o affirmative_a be_v strengthen_v with_o a_o negative_a for_o he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n 14.1_o josn_a 14.1_o honour_v not_o the_o father_n so_o that_o to_o honour_v one_o be_v to_o honour_v the_o other_o and_o one_o can_v well_o honour_v the_o father_n except_o he_o equal_o honour_v the_o son_n this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n we_o ought_v to_o honour_v the_o son_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o manner_n as_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o he_o that_o be_v as_o much_o and_o as_o well_o as_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n that_o be_v to_o put_v our_o whole_a trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o son_n as_o in_o the_o father_n so_o all_o the_o honour_n both_o in_o quantity_n and_o quality_n which_o we_o render_v to_o the_o father_n must_v be_v give_v to_o the_o son_n now_o as_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v that_o this_o sense_n do_v not_o contradict_v but_o well_o agree_v with_o other_o scripture_n it_o appear_v out_o of_o this_o the_o great_a commandment_n and_o duty_n of_o man_n be_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n 10.27_o matth._n 22.37_o mark_v 10.27_o with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o strength_n none_o but_o the_o true_a god_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v so_o to_o be_v love_v obey_v and_o honour_v and_o be_v not_o our_o bless_a saviour_n thus_o to_o be_v belove_v and_o honour_v love_n be_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o honour_n we_o ought_v to_o love_n christ_n before_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v near_a and_o dear_a unto_o we_o 39_o matth._n 10.37_o 38_o 39_o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v son_n or_o daughter_n more_o than_o me●_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o he_o
that_o find_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o 14.26_o luke_n 14.26_o nay_o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o i_o and_o hate_v not_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o brethren_n yea_o and_o his_o own_o life_n he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n be_v not_o this_o the_o manner_n of_o love_n which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o and_o do_v not_o this_o lay_n upon_o we_o a_o duty_n to_o love_n christ_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n with_o all_o our_o soul_n with_o all_o our_o mind_n and_o with_o all_o our_o strength_n thus_o this_o honour_n be_v proper_a for_o and_o ought_v equal_o to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o son_n for_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n i_o hope_v the_o sense_n we_o give_v the_o text_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v how_o all_o man_n without_o distinction_n or_o exceptionare_fw-la bind_v to_o honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n and_o the_o manner_n be_v by_o our_o saviour_n prescribe_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n 4.24_o joh._n 4.24_o now_o i_o must_v show_v how_o the_o text_n they_o bring_v against_o we_o can_v admit_v of_o the_o sense_n which_o we_o do_v because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n first_o to_o the_o scope_n for_o the_o end_n of_o both_o apostle_n 12.14_o 1_o thes_n 4.7_o luk._n 1.74_o 75._o psal_n 93.5_o heb._n 11.6_o heb._n 12.14_o be_v to_o exhort_v christian_n to_o study_n and_o labour_n after_o purity_n and_o holiness_n which_o they_o be_v call_v unto_o all_o that_o be_v adopt_v child_n ought_v to_o walk_v in_o holiness_n because_o holiness_n become_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o as_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n so_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n this_o great_a and_o necessary_a duty_n i_o say_v the_o two_o apostle_n in_o these_o text_n do_v exhort_v man_n to_o strive_v and_o labour_v after_o not_o as_o to_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o perfection_n of_o holiness_n as_o be_v in_o god_n which_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n for_o all_o that_o we_o can_v desire_v be_v that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o holiness_n 5.48_o heb._n 12.10_o mat._n 5.48_o and_o receive_v some_o degree_n of_o it_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o other_o place_n be_v you_o therefore_o perfect_a as_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v perfect_a a_o duty_n we_o ought_v to_o study_v after_o because_o as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v we_o must_v be_v conformable_a unto_o god_n second_o such_o a_o interpretation_n will_v destroy_v the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n set_v down_o in_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o though_o holiness_n be_v a_o communicable_a attribute_n of_o god_n yet_o there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o think_v to_o be_v a_o equality_n between_o purity_n and_o holiness_n in_o god_n and_o those_o small_a portion_n he_o be_v gracious_o please_v to_o impart_v unto_o we_o holiness_n be_v essential_o and_o originative_o in_o god_n nay_o holiness_n be_v god_n infinite_o and_o most_o simple_o holy_a and_o we_o be_v natural_o unclean_a transgressor_n from_o the_o womb_n conceive_v in_o sin_n bring_v forth_o in_o iniquity_n wallow_v in_o our_o own_o blood_n till_o god_n be_v please_v to_o wash_v and_o cleanse_v we_o to_o derive_v from_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o work_v some_o small_a degree_n of_o holiness_n in_o we_o god_n be_v most_o holy_a 6.36_o luke_n 6.36_o thrice_o holy_a in_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o be_v command_v to_o be_v merciful_a as_o our_o father_n also_o be_v merciful_a that_o be_v as_o far_o as_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o enable_v we_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o imitate_v that_o pattern_n but_o not_o pretend_v or_o hope_v to_o arrive_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o it_o which_o in_o both_o mercy_n and_o holiness_n be_v no_o less_o than_o blasphemy_n wherefore_o such_o interpretation_n god_n word_n do_v abhor_v and_o in_o that_o place_n st._n john_n say_v not_o every_o man_n that_o have_v this_o hope_n have_v purify_v in_o the_o praetertense_n but_o in_o the_o present_n purify_v himself_o to_o show_v how_o he_o do_v but_o aim_n at_o it_o and_o by_o degree_n and_o st._n peter_n in_o the_o 16._o v._n explain_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o forego_n verse_n because_o it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a he_o show_v no_o equality_n or_o parity_n of_o holiness_n the_o word_n as_o which_o he_o use_v before_o he_o now_o render_v by_o for_o as_o a_o motive_n and_o a_o cause_n why_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v holy_a because_o god_n be_v holy_a to_o what_o i_o say_v before_o i_o shall_v now_o add_v at_o last_o how_o the_o word_n as_o do_v in_o other_o place_n denote_v a_o equality_n as_o the_o father_n know_v i_o even_o so_o know_v i_o the_o father_n 10.15_o john_n 10.15_o which_o in_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v take_v for_o to_o love_n he_o equal_o know_v and_o love_v the_o father_n with_o a_o eternal_a and_o perfect_a love_n as_o the_o father_n know_v and_o love_v he_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n denote_v a_o equality_n not_o a_o similitude_n as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v the_o son_n life_n in_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o original_a now_o to_o understand_v the_o forego_n place_n of_o a_o equality_n 26._o chap_n 5._o 26._o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o other_o scripture_n nor_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n but_o do_v tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o both_o father_n and_o son_n for_o the_o rule_n be_v most_o true_a in_o the_o text_n now_o in_o question_n he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n that_o send_v he_o but_o he_o that_o honour_v the_o son_n honour_v the_o father_n also_o which_o be_v a_o natural_a inference_n out_o of_o the_o place_n but_o that_o people_n who_o pretend_v to_o honour_v the_o father_n have_v take_v a_o quite_o contrary_a way_n to_o do_v it_o which_o be_v dishonour_v the_o son_n 8.49_o joh._n 8.49_o as_o he_o say_v to_o the_o jew_n i_o honour_v my_o father_n and_o you_o dishonour_v i_o with_o rob_v he_o if_o they_o can_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o attribute_n when_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n name_n chap._n 5.23_o chap._n 12._o we_o be_v baptize_v in_o christ_n name_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n bear_v witness_n from_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v glorify_v in_o the_o son_n have_v thus_o prove_v in_o general_a that_o divine_a worship_n belong_v to_o christ_n we_o must_v now_o come_v to_o the_o place_n which_o demonstrate_v it_o in_o the_o particular_n as_o first_o we_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o name_n baptism_n be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n whereby_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n we_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o he_o whereby_o we_o own_v he_o to_o be_v our_o god_n and_o redeemer_n this_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n now_o no_o covenant_n be_v in_o force_n till_o it_o be_v pass_v the_o seal_n this_o seal_n in_o baptism_n be_v not_o only_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o also_o administer_v in_o his_o name_n and_o authority_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o this_o be_v his_o right_n which_o right_o of_o his_o 28.19_o matth._n 28.19_o he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o when_o he_o command_v all_o nation_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o name_n none_o but_o god_n can_v institute_v sacrament_n for_o none_o but_o he_o can_v bestow_v the_o grace_n therein_o represent_v none_o but_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o house_n have_v right_a to_o make_v law_n in_o his_o house_n now_o the_o church_n be_v god_n house_n and_o see_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o administration_n of_o both_o sacrament_n therein_o be_v do_v by_o christ_n authority_n and_o in_o his_o name_n he_o be_v thereby_o not_o only_o own_v but_o also_o worship_v as_o god_n and_o lord_n of_o it_o wherefore_o the_o church_n be_v call_v christ_n own_o house_n 3.6_o heb._n 3.6_o i_o find_v indeed_o there_o be_v a_o subordination_n between_o god_n and_o moses_n this_o be_v but_o a_o servant_n but_o the_o same_o subordination_n between_o god_n and_o moses_n be_v between_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o moses_n as_o be_v now_o of_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n under_o christ_n ●_o mal._n 3._o ●_o for_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o temple_n who_o
by_o st._n paul_n the_o name_n saviour_n be_v often_o join_v with_o that_o of_o god_n 1.3_o tit._n 1.3_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n both_o name_n belong_v to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n as_o true_o real_o and_o actual_o god_n as_o he_o be_v saviour_n and_o in_o another_o place_n all_o these_o name_n god_n saviour_n and_o lord_n be_v give_v to_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n and_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 1.1_o 1_o tim._n 1.1_o as_o he_o be_v jesus_n christ_n so_o as_o certain_o he_o be_v god_n lord_n and_o saviour_n not_o only_o his_o office_n but_o also_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v therein_o contain_v and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o call_v he_o the_o bless_a god_n ver_fw-la 11_o as_o in_o another_o place_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o that_o christ_n be_v thereby_o mean_v it_o appear_v by_o his_o say_n the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o the_o bless_a god_n now_o it_o be_v in_o several_a place_n call_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o in_o almost_o every_o epistle_n of_o he_o he_o call_v himself_o a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 8.9_o mark_v 1.1_o rom._n 1.16_o 1_o cor._n 9.12_o 18._o gal._n 1.7_o rom._n 8.9_o send_v by_o he_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n so_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o now_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v none_o of_o he_o that_o which_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n paul_n call_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n he_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n whereby_o he_o make_v god_n and_o christ_n to_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n under_o another_o head_n our_o bless_a saviour_n do_v in_o many_o place_n afford_v we_o a_o argument_n for_o his_o divinity_n consist_v in_o a_o certain_a divine_a manner_n of_o speak_v with_o authority_n not_o as_o subordinate_a or_o delegate_v but_o original_a in_o he_o as_o the_o head_n and_o spring_n not_o as_o by_o favour_n and_o courtesy_n derive_v upon_o he_o but_o out_o of_o his_o own_o natural_a right_n which_o be_v above_o what_o any_o man_n ever_o do_v or_o can_v pretend_v to_o as_o when_o in_o his_o sermon_n upon_o the_o mount_n he_o reform_v the_o abuse_n creep_v in_o against_o the_o law_n wherein_o he_o assert_v his_o legislative_a power_n at_o several_a time_n 7.29_o matth._n 5.20_o 22_o 28_o 32_o 34_o 39_o 44._o chap._n 7.29_o but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o and_o the_o people_n that_o hear_v he_o can_v take_v notice_n how_o he_o teach_v they_o as_o one_o have_v authority_n and_o not_o as_o the_o scribe_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n when_o he_o send_v they_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whosesoever_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v and_o whosesoever_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v and_o to_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n all_o these_o be_v word_n of_o command_n further_o let_v we_o observe_v how_o no_o man_n will_n be_v absolute_o the_o rule_n of_o another_o one_o man_n will_n be_v free_a and_o independent_a from_o that_o of_o another_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v absolute_o to_o follow_v the_o will_n of_o another_o because_o every_o man_n will_n be_v fallible_a and_o so_o may_v lead_v we_o into_o error_n but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n alone_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o alone_o to_o be_v follow_v wherefore_o in_o our_o prayer_n simple_o we_o say_v thy_o will_n be_v do_v and_o when_o man_n will_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v it_o be_v relative_o and_o only_o in_o conformity_n to_o that_o of_o god_n but_o christ_n will_n be_v the_o law_n without_o dispute_n or_o exception_n thus_o when_o he_o call_v those_o that_o be_v heavy_a lade_v 28._o matth._n 11.27_o 28._o he_o positive_o say_v i_o will_v give_v you_o rest_n have_v in_o the_o forego_n verse_n affirm_v how_o none_o know_v the_o father_n but_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o thus_o when_o he_o cure_v the_o leper_n he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_a so_o he_o say_v the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v and_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o i_o i_o will_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n 44._o joh._n 6.40_o 44._o herein_o be_v his_o own_o power_n set_v forth_o so_o it_o be_v when_o speak_v with_o the_o samaritan_n woman_n that_o the_o water_n he_o will_v give_v shall_v be_v in_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v up_o into_o everlasting_a life_n and_o in_o that_o other_o place_n if_o any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n that_o he_o may_v have_v everlasting_a life_n or_o that_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n may_v flow_v river_n of_o live_a water_n but_o let_v he_o come_v to_o i_o and_o without_o go_v for_o this_o far_a to_o any_o he_o shall_v certain_o drink_v and_o be_v satisfy_v for_o that_o i_o will_v do_v for_o he_o this_o be_v to_o speak_v like_o lord_n master_n and_o god_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v man_n he_o may_v speak_v to_o after_o that_o rate_n be_v so_o gracious_o exalt_v above_o they_o all_o well_o but_o i_o will_v go_v high_o and_o say_v something_o more_o than_o have_v be_v hitherto_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n speak_v to_o the_o father_n 17.24_o joh._n 17.24_o he_o sometime_o say_v i_o will_v as_o in_o the_o prayer_n which_o before_o his_o leave_v the_o world_n in_o the_o capacity_n of_o mediator_n he_o put_v up_o to_o he_o for_o the_o elect_n father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o also_o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o to_o behold_v my_o glory_n thus_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_v he_o dispose_v of_o glory_n do_v any_o man_n mere_o such_o ever_o speak_v to_o god_n in_o that_o way_n elijah_n and_o john_n baptist_n be_v the_o two_o most_o fervent_a man_n in_o spirit_n that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o scripture_n but_o can_v we_o ever_o find_v any_o thing_n like_o this_o that_o ever_o they_o do_v or_o say_v no_o none_o but_o god_n the_o son_n can_v be_v so_o familiar_a with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o he_o well_o know_v both_o god_n the_o father_n and_o himself_o when_o he_o speak_v thus_o &_o except_o he_o have_v be_v sure_a he_o may_v he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v it_o but_o it_o have_v be_v as_o a_o most_o unsufferable_a presumption_n nay_o blasphemy_n in_o any_o man_n to_o have_v say_v so_o we_o must_v conclude_v he_o be_v more_o than_o a_o man_n and_o that_o he_o thus_o speak_v upon_o another_o account_n even_o upon_o the_o same_o he_o have_v say_v before_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o have_v make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n we_o read_v how_o our_o saviour_n take_v on_o he_o 2.16_o heb._n 2.16_o not_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n but_o he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n the_o reduplication_n take_v not_o and_o take_v denote_v the_o voluntary_a act_n of_o a_o person_n who_o make_v a_o choice_n which_o he_o have_v not_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n to_o do_v except_o he_o have_v praeexi_v before_o he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o that_o before_o he_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n he_o must_v need_v have_v have_v another_o be_v and_o before_o he_o be_v make_v he_o must_v real_o have_v be_v god_n he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v a_o angel_n because_o he_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n again_o our_o saviour_n say_v i_o ascend_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n and_o to_o my_o god_n and_o your_o god_n why_o not_o to_o our_o father_n as_o he_o say_v when_o he_o teach_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o themselves_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v brethren_n upon_o the_o same_o bottom_n of_o grace_n though_o in_o different_a degree_n he_o will_v have_v speak_v of_o he_o as_o of_o their_o common_a father_n but_o speak_v disjunctive_o and_o in_o different_a number_n see_v he_o say_v and_o do_v nothing_o without_o good_a cause_n there_o must_v be_v a_o particular_a reason_n for_o it_o which_o be_v natural_o and_o easy_o insinuate_v to_o be_v this_o that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n and_o he_o not_o upon_o a_o common_a one_o and_o the_o same_o but_o upon_o a_o much_o different_a account_n their_o father_n by_o grace_n and_o his_o by_o nature_n furthermore_o christ_n so_o often_o speak_v of_o his_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n as_o i_o seek_v not_o my_o own_o will_n 9.37_o john_n 5.3_o &_o 6_o 38._o chap._n 7.16_o mark_v 9.37_o but_o the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v my_o own_o
be_v real_o in_o heaven_n before_o he_o come_v down_o upon_o earth_n and_o as_o he_o real_o and_o actual_o ascend_v up_o into_o it_o so_o he_o real_o and_o actual_o descend_v from_o thence_o upon_o earth_n here_o be_v two_o term_n a_o quo_fw-la and_o ad_fw-la quem_fw-la as_o he_o can_v not_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o from_o the_o earth_n so_o he_o can_v not_o come_v down_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v there_o the_o least_o ground_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n to_o think_v christ_n intention_n be_v to_o entertain_v they_o with_o his_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n in_o idea_n and_o meditation_n when_o his_o design_n be_v to_o show_v how_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o be_v the_o author_n of_o resurrection_n and_o life_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o by_o mean_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o give_v they_o offence_n nor_o impossible_a consider_v what_o he_o be_v original_o from_o heaven_n therefore_o not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o mere_a man_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v far_o more_o divine_a and_o powerful_a than_o any_o man_n they_o find_v this_o will_v not_o do_v yet_o to_o dispute_v the_o ground_n as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v they_o forge_v in_o a_o dream_n for_o otherwise_o it_o can_v be_v a_o very_a strange_a adventure_n that_o christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n seem_v undeniable_a therefore_o because_o they_o dare_v not_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n they_o will_v mince_v the_o matter_n thus_o how_o christ_n between_o his_o birth_n and_o death_n and_o before_o he_o preach_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o for_o a_o while_o he_o remain_v to_o be_v better_o instruct_v by_o the_o father_n in_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v to_o teach_v mankind_n after_o which_o he_o come_v down_o again_o but_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n but_o only_a fancy_n for_o it_o the_o evangelist_n do_v give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o most_o passage_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o how_o can_v they_o all_o four_o have_v forget_v this_o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a that_o may_v have_v befall_v he_o in_o that_o kind_n the_o evangelist_n matthew_n and_o luke_n in_o their_o four_o first_o chapter_n relate_v many_o thing_n belong_v to_o that_o time_n as_o not_o only_o his_o birth_n but_o also_o his_o circumcision_n on_o the_o eight_o day_n and_o his_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v present_v to_o the_o lord_n receive_v by_o simeon_n speak_v of_o by_o anna_n a_o prophetess_n adore_v by_o the_o wise_a man_n carry_v into_o egypt_n his_o return_n to_o nazareth_n his_o be_v find_v in_o the_o temple_n sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o doctor_n ask_v they_o question_n his_o be_v subject_a to_o joseph_n and_o mary_n baptize_v of_o john_n tempt_v in_o the_o wilderness_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o one_o word_n about_o this_o pretend_a ascension_n how_o come_v it_o that_o he_o be_v not_o miss_v by_o any_o this_o they_o will_v to_o have_v be_v in_o imitation_n of_o moses_n who_o god_n call_v up_o to_o the_o mount_n that_o it_o be_v so_o with_o moses_n we_o read_v in_o the_o word_n but_o nothing_o like_o it_o of_o our_o saviour_n and_o when_o god_n be_v silent_a our_o mouth_n shall_v be_v stop_v and_o nothing_o allow_v to_o fancy_n or_o imagination_n beside_o when_o moses_n be_v call_v up_o the_o people_n have_v public_a notice_n give_v they_o of_o it_o and_o by_o god_n command_n he_o take_v aaron_n son_n and_o seventy_o of_o the_o elder_n all_o the_o people_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o mount_n and_o when_o moses_n come_v back_o all_o israel_n see_v he_o with_o his_o face_n shine_v none_o of_o which_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o this_o pretend_a ascension_n of_o christ_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o witness_n not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o of_o his_o disciple_n as_o he_o have_v in_o his_o trassiguration_n which_o three_o evangelist_n give_v a_o exact_a account_n of_o which_o though_o important_a yet_o not_o so_o considerable_a as_o this_o which_o can_v not_o be_v perform_v without_o a_o great_a miracle_n whether_o he_o have_v be_v carry_v up_o only_o in_o soul_n for_o then_o his_o soul_n have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n so_o death_n must_v have_v follow_v or_o whether_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o body_n can_v not_o have_v be_v sustain_v in_o the_o air_n without_o a_o miracle_n and_o during_o that_o time_n where_o be_v his_o disciple_n this_o certain_o shall_v have_v make_v a_o great_a gap_n in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o life_n which_o we_o can_v perceive_v in_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n no_o nor_o in_o those_o that_o have_v write_v his_o life_n from_o his_o birth_n to_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n st._n luke_n say_v of_o the_o gospel_n he_o have_v write_v how_o he_o have_v make_v a_o treatise_n of_o all_o that_o jesus_n begin_v both_o to_o do_v and_o to_o teach_v yet_o not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o 1.1_o act_n 1.1_o as_o indeed_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o christ_n to_o go_v up_o to_o know_v as_o they_o say_v his_o father_n will_n which_o may_v have_v be_v communicate_v unto_o he_o as_o to_o moses_n john_n baptist_n without_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o know_v it_o but_o he_o know_v it_o before_o at_o his_o baptism_n the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o the_o father_n have_v high_o own_v he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v descend_v upon_o he_o so_o that_o he_o return_v from_o jordan_n full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4.1_o luke_n 4.1_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o go_n and_o so_o the_o cause_n cease_v so_o must_v the_o effect_n so_o that_o also_o it_o have_v be_v preposterous_a after_o what_o happen_v in_o his_o baptism_n for_o he_o to_o have_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n upon_o such_o a_o errand_n beside_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v he_o enter_v but_o once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n 9.12_o heb._n 9.12_o hereby_o we_o see_v how_o if_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o take_v it_o that_o sort_n of_o man_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o put_v upon_o we_o every_o suggestion_n of_o they_o for_o a_o argument_n every_o argument_n for_o a_o law_n yea_o and_o every_o dream_n for_o a_o revelation_n though_o our_o saviour_n here_o call_v himself_o son_n of_o man_n and_o not_o son_n of_o god_n it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o prejudice_n what_o we_o say_v for_o if_o he_o have_v call_v himself_o son_n of_o god_n it_o have_v be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o they_o will_v not_o own_v he_o to_o be_v such_o and_o this_o show_v the_o better_a the_o oneness_n of_o the_o person_n when_o there_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o idiom_n when_o in_o the_o person_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o one_o nature_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v never_o in_o heaven_n before_o his_o ascension_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n he_o be_v here_o our_o bless_a saviour_n call_v himself_o son_n of_o man_n may_v allude_v to_o with_o intent_n to_o make_v man_n take_v notice_n of_o what_o be_v speak_v of_o himself_o by_o the_o prophet_n 14._o dan._n 7.13_o 14._o i_o see_v in_o the_o night_n vision_n and_o behold_v one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o near_o before_o he_o and_o there_o be_v give_v he_o dominion_n and_o glory_n and_o a_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o exact_a prophecy_n of_o his_o ascension_n one_o thing_n more_o they_o have_v to_o say_v and_o it_o be_v the_o example_n of_o paul_n have_v be_v catch_v up_o to_o the_o three_o heaven_n but_o must_v it_o from_o what_o have_v happen_v to_o paul_n 12.2_o 2_o cor._n 12.2_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o have_v befall_v the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o indeed_o we_o read_v of_o paul_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v but_o of_o christ_n we_o read_v no_o such_o thing_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o never_o read_v that_o either_o paul_n be_v from_o heaven_n or_o come_v down_o as_o we_o read_v it_o of_o christ_n very_o often_o paul_n speak_v of_o that_o with_o the_o great_a modesty_n in_o the_o world_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v seem_v to_o exalt_v himself_o but_o our_o lord_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n or_o fear_n that_o man_n will_v think_v he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o himself_o do_v speak_v loud_o high_o declare_v and_o often_o proclaim_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n equal_a with_o he_o send_v by_o the_o
to_o screw_v it_o up_o into_o a_o allegory_n nor_o when_o the_o discourse_n be_v doctrinal_a and_o the_o word_n in_o it_o usual_a proper_a and_o suit_v to_o the_o thing_n intend_v to_o be_v express_v this_o indeed_o be_v what_o peter_n call_v a_o rest_a the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n do_v explain_v the_o first_o for_o the_o word_n signify_v christ_n ascension_n into_o heaven_n they_o be_v speak_v upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o christ_n instruct_v encourage_v and_o dispose_v his_o disciple_n to_o that_o separation_n which_o be_v sudden_o to_o happen_v by_o his_o death_n after_o which_o though_o he_o show_v himself_o alive_a by_o many_o infallible_a proof_n be_v see_v of_o they_o forty_o day_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o converse_v not_o with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o before_o his_o passion_n 1.2_o act_n 1.2_o now_o this_o occasion_n which_o they_o be_v speak_v upon_o sheweth_z how_o he_o discourse_v about_o leave_v the_o world_n go_v to_o his_o father_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n which_o reay_o and_o visible_o happen_v forty_o day_n after_o his_o resurrection_n by_o these_o expression_n which_o be_v familiar_a with_o he_o of_o go_v up_o or_o ascend_v to_o the_o father_n he_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o though_o the_o father_n do_v fill_v up_o heaven_n which_o be_v his_o throne_n and_o earth_n his_o footstool_n yet_o in_o scripture_n he_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v and_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n as_o in_o his_o home_n 14.2_o joh._n 14.2_o wherefore_o our_o saviour_n call_v heaven_n his_o father_n house_n now_o as_o this_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n signify_v christ_n ascension_n from_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o father_n so_o the_o first_o signify_v his_o come_n down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n again_o the_o opposition_n which_o be_v see_v between_o both_o part_n as_o i_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n with_o and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o i_o be_o come_v into_o the_o world_n with_o again_o i_o leave_v the_o world_n do_v show_n that_o if_o to_o come_v from_o the_o father_n do_v denote_v to_o be_v send_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n by_o the_o father_n so_o to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n signify_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o namely_o to_o go_v from_o earth_n up_o to_o heaven_n to_o the_o father_n christ_n leave_v the_o world_n be_v go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o world_n wherefore_o to_o go_v to_o the_o father_n and_o leave_v the_o world_n be_v the_o same_o so_o likewise_o christ_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n and_o these_o two_o kind_n of_o expression_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n 13.3_o chap._n 13.3_o and_o as_o he_o be_v come_v from_o god_n so_o he_o go_v to_o god_n this_o come_n from_o the_o father_n and_o come_v into_o the_o world_n do_v imply_v first_o a_o send_v as_o the_o lord_n declare_v it_o 8.42_o john_n 8.42_o i_o proceed_v forth_o and_o come_v from_o god_n neither_o come_v i_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o and_o than_o something_o posterior_n to_o the_o mission_n and_o as_o it_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o execution_n thereof_o for_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v wherefore_o come_v christ_n into_o the_o world_n it_o will_v be_v well_o answer_v to_o say_v because_o the_o father_n send_v he_o so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v send_v must_v come_v from_o he_o that_o send_v he_o to_o the_o place_n whereunto_o he_o be_v send_v then_o the_o word_n i_o come_v from_o the_o father_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o send_n rather_o than_o the_o send_n itself_o it_o be_v a_o wrong_a sense_n give_v as_o to_o apply_v they_o to_o a_o divine_a production_n i_o come_v from_o the_o father_n that_o be_v i_o be_o miraculous_o produce_v by_o the_o father_n this_o exposition_n do_v confound_v thing_n that_o be_v different_a for_o none_o can_v be_v send_v before_o he_o have_v a_o be_v but_o that_o be_v produce_v which_o have_v no_o be_v production_n be_v before_o send_v thus_o the_o word_n must_v signify_v that_o christ_n return_v to_o the_o place_n whence_o he_o come_v and_o ascend_v into_o that_o whence_o he_o descend_v before_o this_o he_o go_v about_o to_o inculcate_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o opposition_n he_o make_v of_o his_o origin_n with_o they_o you_o be_v from_o benedth_n 23._o v._o 23._o i_o be_o from_o above_o you_o be_v of_o this_o world_n i_o be_o not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o from_o the_o father_n not_o from_o earth_n but_o from_o heaven_n he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n by_o a_o natural_a necessity_n but_o voluntary_o and_o by_o a_o determine_a counsel_n he_o come_v into_o it_o as_o ambassador_n from_o his_o father_n to_o reveal_v unto_o man_n the_o doctrine_n and_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o for_o judgement_n 9.39_o chap._n 9.39_o for_o judgement_n be_o i_o come_v into_o this_o world_n and_o all_o the_o while_o he_o be_v here_o even_o very_o betimes_o he_o mind_v what_o he_o come_v about_o unto_o his_o mother_n after_o she_o find_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o ask_v he_o why_o have_v thou_o thus_o deal_v with_o we_o he_o answer_v how_o be_v it_o that_o you_o seek_v i_o wist_v you_o not_o that_o i_o must_v be_v about_o my_o father_n business_n 49._o luke_n 2.48_o 49._o so_o that_o he_o continue_v upon_o earth_n till_o that_o be_v over_o before_o which_o time_n he_o will_v not_o go_v back_o 17.4_o john_n 17.4_o but_o before_o his_o departure_n he_o declare_v i_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o to_o do_v whereupon_o he_o return_v back_o to_o his_o father_n from_o who_o he_o be_v come_v before_o leave_v earth_n a_o place_n so_o disproportionate_a and_o inferior_a to_o heaven_n whence_o he_o have_v his_o extraction_n and_o consequent_o unworthy_a to_o contain_v he_o any_o long_o this_o reason_n he_o give_v his_o disciple_n who_o heart_n upon_o his_o declare_v he_o be_v about_o leave_v of_o they_o have_v be_v fill_v with_o sorrow_n how_o it_o be_v not_o just_a he_o shall_v always_o be_v among_o those_o that_o have_v use_v he_o so_o unworthy_o and_o withal_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v go_v away_o or_o else_o the_o comforter_n 7._o chap._n 16._o ●_o 7._o who_o be_v to_o be_v with_o they_o after_o his_o departure_n will_v not_o come_v after_o all_o that_o hither_o to_o have_v be_v say_v may_v not_o i_o ask_v concern_v the_o method_n and_o carriage_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v it_o fair_a about_o these_o fundamental_a point_n to_o turn_v the_o whole_a scripture_n into_o a_o allegory_n and_o make_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n never_o to_o speak_v proper_o to_o force_n upon_o and_o wrest_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n such_o sense_n and_o exposition_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o deign_v of_o the_o holy_a writer_n and_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o this_o can_v serve_v the_o turn_n to_o screw_v up_o and_o work_v their_o b●●ing_n how_o to_o contrive_v and_o forge_v a_o imaginary_a after_o son_n of_o christ_n into_o heaven_n about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o ministry_n and_o consequent_o a_o cease_v ●●wn_v from_o thence_o after_o it_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n deny_v that_o true_a and_o real_a descend_v of_o ●is_n upon_o earth_n which_o be_v so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o assort_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o to_o say_v though_o truth_n and_o scripture_n do_v not_o bear_v it_o yet_o we_o i_o now_o how_o to_o supply_v it_o of_o our_o own_o flectere_fw-la si_fw-la nequco_fw-la saperos_fw-la ae_n eroma_fw-la movebo_fw-la now_o to_o strengthen_v what_o i_o have_v say_v to_o prove_v our_o lord_n divinity_n before_o i_o proceed_v to_o answer_v object_v i_o shall_v add_v what_o follow_v upon_o the_o forementioned_a head_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o mean_v the_o increated_a angel_n who_o person_n in_o appearance_n be_v man_n in_o office_n angel_n in_o nature_n god_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n i_o shall_v somewhat_o insist_v upon_o a_o most_o notable_a place_n and_o much_o to_o our_o purpose_n though_o i_o already_o say_v something_o about_o it_o for_o i_o can_v not_o willing_a to_o lay_v aside_o a_o strong_a and_o very_a useful_a weapon_n because_o i_o make_v use_v of_o it_o before_o for_o when_o once_o it_o have_v be_v try_v we_o be_v the_o sure_a of_o and_o may_v better_o depend_v upon_o it_o on_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o abominable_a idolatry_n of_o the_o golden_a calf_n god_n refuse_v to_o go_v up_o
and_o wrestle_v with_o he_o when_o come_v from_o lanban_n he_o have_v pass_v over_o the_o ford_n jabbock_n that_o same_o i_o say_v be_v god_n the_o angel_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n this_o happen_v when_o jacob_n and_o his_o family_n be_v go_v into_o canaan_n whereof_o the_o possession_n have_v be_v promise_v he_o and_o his_o posterity_n upon_o the_o very_a border_n he_o be_v meet_v by_o his_o adversary_n his_o brother_n esau_n who_o have_v a_o pretence_n to_o that_o inheritance_n and_o therefore_o come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o power_n which_o of_o himself_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v which_o make_v he_o afraid_a as_o we_o read_v v._o 11_o wherefore_o upon_o such_o a_o trial_n to_o strengthen_v his_o faith_n and_o make_v he_o lie_v hold_v the_o fast_o on_o the_o promise_n 1.20_o 2_o cor._n 1.20_o he_o in_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n appear_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n because_o in_o his_o seed_n be_v the_o promise_v make_v but_o this_o man_n in_o appearance_n be_v god_n in_o effect_n and_o nature_n therefore_o jacob_n do_v solemn_o pray_v to_o he_o for_o his_o blessing_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o wrestle_n and_o will_v not_o rest_v till_o he_o have_v bless_v he_o which_o he_o obtain_v v._n 29_o and_o in_o remembrance_n of_o this_o jacob_n call_v the_o name_n of_o the_o place_n peniel_n because_o he_o have_v see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n this_o solemn_a meeting_n with_o much_o comfort_n and_o thankfulness_n jacob_n remember_v when_o he_o bless_v joseph_n and_o his_o two_o son_n in_o these_o most_o remarkable_a word_n god_n before_o who_o my_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n do_v walk_v the_o god_n which_o feed_v i_o all_o my_o life_n long_o unto_o this_o day_n the_o angel_n which_o redeem_v i_o from_o all_o evil_a bless_v the_o lad_n the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n the_o god_n that_o say_v he_o all_o his_o life-time_n and_o the_o angel_n which_o redeem_v he_o from_o all_o evil_a be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o the_o name_n redeemer_n be_v proper_a to_o christ_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n all_o these_o be_v irrefragable_a truth_n which_o socinian_n can_v effectual_o say_v nothing_o against_o though_o out_o of_o the_o rabbi_n or_o jewish_a doctor_n write_n they_o have_v be_v screw_v up_o whatsoever_o they_o think_v may_v serve_v their_o turn_n thus_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o borrow_v weapon_n from_o christ_n swear_a enemy_n but_o before_o i_o leave_v off_o this_o point_n about_o angel_n whether_o the_o creator_n or_o create_v one_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o must_v say_v how_o though_o these_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n mighty_a in_o power_n and_o excellent_a in_o create_a glory_n yet_o when_o compare_v with_o god_n 12.40_o job_n 15.15_o &_o 4.18_o isa_n 6.3_o john_n 12.40_o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v not_o pure_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o he_o charge_v they_o with_o folly_n and_o they_o cover_v their_o face_n at_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n as_o not_o be_v able_a nor_o worthy_a to_o look_v upon_o t._n and_o that_o place_n about_o divine_a glory_n as_o i_o already_o observe_v we_o know_v to_o belong_v to_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v call_v lord_n and_o king_n of_o glory_n because_o all_o glory_n be_v in_o and_o from_o he_o as_o its_o true_a spring_n and_o proper_a centre_n psal_n 24_o compare_v with_o 1_o cor._n 2.8_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o at_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n all_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o worship_v he_o which_o be_v perform_v in_o their_o attendance_n on_o his_o birth_n proclamation_n of_o his_o nativity_n and_o celebrate_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n on_o that_o account_n and_o afterward_o declare_v his_o resurrection_n and_o confirm_v his_o ascension_n even_o minister_a unto_o he_o after_o the_o temptation_n and_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o agony_n and_o whilst_o angel_n be_v call_v god_n minister_n who_o ought_v to_o worship_n christ_n the_o son_n as_o their_o maker_n unto_o the_o son_n he_o say_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v as_o much_o and_o as_o great_a a_o difference_n between_o the_o son_n and_o angel_n as_o there_o be_v between_o god_n and_o angel_n between_o the_o creator_n and_o the_o creature_n for_o indeed_o in_o that_o same_o place_n the_o heaven_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n so_o no_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v between_o the_o son_n and_o angel_n the_o noble_a of_o all_o creature_n the_o name_n elohim_n absolute_o use_v be_v never_o in_o scripture_n give_v to_o any_o singular_a angel_n or_o man_n which_o be_v the_o same_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o article_n by_o the_o apostle_n give_v the_o son_n so_o he_o be_v denote_v by_o that_o name_n as_o the_o true_a god_n by_o nature_n and_o this_o same_o have_v a_o kingdom_n signify_v by_o the_o royal_a mark_n of_o a_o sceptre_n and_o a_o throne_n whereunto_o eternity_n be_v annex_v for_o it_o be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o whereby_o its_o duration_n or_o last_a be_v express_v so_o be_v his_o manner_n of_o administration_n with_o righteousness_n his_o sceptre_n be_v a_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n and_o to_o show_v his_o preparation_n for_o that_o administration_n of_o he_o it_o be_v say_v he_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_a iniquity_n now_o the_o throne_n be_v not_o for_o the_o servant_n but_o for_o the_o son_n because_o the_o kingdom_n thereby_o denote_v be_v not_o they_o but_o he_o who_o indeed_o be_v gracious_o please_v to_o promise_v his_o apostle_n that_o at_o the_o last_o day_n they_o shall_v sit_v on_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v they_o shall_v participate_v only_o at_o the_o last_o day_n with_o he_o in_o his_o kingly_a power_n 19.28_o mat._n 19.28_o and_o in_o some_o degree_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o a_o interest_n in_o his_o kingdom_n which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o throne_n be_v not_o they_o but_o he_o here_o i_o must_v take_v notice_n how_o for_o prevent_v many_o error_n rash_a and_o false_a opinion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v man_n will_v follow_v the_o apostle_n practice_v in_o this_o place_n who_o abound_v in_o quotation_n give_v we_o a_o rule_n and_o a_o example_n to_o do_v so_o for_o with_o compare_v scripture_n one_o with_o another_o we_o come_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o god_n mind_n and_o will_n in_o they_o for_o by_o what_o be_v speak_v of_o angel_n in_o one_o place_n and_o of_o the_o son_n in_o another_o we_o be_v teach_v what_o to_o believe_v of_o he_o and_o of_o they_o they_o who_o follow_v not_o this_o rule_n be_v apt_a to_o frame_v in_o their_o head_n hasty_a wrong_a and_o false_a notion_n about_o god_n mind_n especial_o in_o the_o matter_n we_o be_v now_o upon_o and_o what_o be_v it_o that_o give_v the_o throne_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n unchangeableness_n and_o eternity_n but_o his_o divine_a nature_n the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n whence_o the_o apostle_n draw_v his_o argument_n do_v not_o belong_v to_o solomon_n for_o the_o word_n o_o god_n do_v not_o relate_v to_o he_o nor_o these_o thy_o throne_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o for_o he_o reign_v but_o forty_o year_n nor_o to_o his_o successor_n who_o go_v off_o the_o stage_n at_o or_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o babylonian_a captivity_n we_o know_v how_o in_o some_o thing_n solomon_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o every_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o antitype_n shall_v belong_v unto_o the_o type_n for_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o type_n so_o to_o represent_v and_o shadow_v out_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o what_o the_o prophet_n will_v teach_v concern_v he_o shall_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o type_n whereby_o he_o be_v represent_v for_o the_o antitype_n be_v what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n ever_o chief_o aim_v at_o so_o though_o the_o type_n and_o antitype_n agree_v in_o some_o thing_n in_o other_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o they_o but_o that_o in_o this_o place_n the_o apostle_n do_v interpret_v those_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n it_o appear_v out_o of_o v._o 8_o but_o unto_o the_o son_n he_o say_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v in_o that_o party_n but_o vain_a and_o idle_a word_n to_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v what_o he_o say_v and_o which_o be_v write_v for_o our_o instruction_n and_o with_o we_o they_o shall_v take_v notice_n how_o it_o be_v say_v when_o he_o bring_v in_o his_o
must_v never_o attempt_v to_o pry_v into_o this_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o most_o humble_o and_o with_o a_o awful_a reverence_n we_o ought_v to_o adore_v and_o believe_v without_o any_o far_a enquiry_n into_o it_o because_o god_n have_v reveal_v it_o it_o be_v so_o namely_o that_o the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v flesh_n in_o religion_n there_o be_v several_a other_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v simple_o believe_v though_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o our_o reason_n to_o comprehend_v they_o as_o the_o infiniteness_n immensity_n and_o eternity_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o former_a be_v every_o where_o within_o and_o without_o the_o great_a and_o least_o thing_n so_o be_v that_o union_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n incomprehensible_a thus_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o divine_a essence_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v competent_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o creator_n almightiness_n eternity_n and_o suchlike_a attribute_n but_o not_o so_o in_o the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o one_o person_n for_o such_o thing_n belong_v only_o to_o that_o person_n for_o who_o sake_n they_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o essence_n as_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n and_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n we_o know_v how_o the_o work_n ad_fw-la extra_fw-la or_o outward_a be_v undivided_a and_o common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n always_o except_v that_o wherein_o they_o destroy_v the_o proper_a attribute_n of_o the_o person_n thus_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n not_o the_o father_n be_v send_v the_o son_n not_o the_o father_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v flesh_n though_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o incarnation_n for_o the_o angel_n say_v 1.35_o luk._n 1.35_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o 21.3_o prov._n 9.1_o rev._n 21.3_o and_o wisdom_n whereby_o the_o son_n be_v represent_v have_v build_v her_o house_n otherwise_o call_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n so_o then_o the_o work_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o in_o the_o effect_n be_v terminative_o only_a in_o the_o son_n when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o the_o adorable_a and_o incomprehensible_a incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o his_o take_a ●ur_n human_a nature_n he_o say_v 25.20.22_o 1_o pet._n 1.12_o exod._n 25.20.22_o which_o thing_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o look_v into_o allude_v to_o the_o two_o cherubim_n on_o the_o mercy_n seat_n towards_o which_o their_o face_n be_v as_o desirous_a to_o see_v into_o it_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v the_o ark_n and_o above_o upon_o the_o art_n be_v the_o mercy_n seat_n as_o the_o most_o holy_a part_n of_o he_o whole_a for_o there_o god_n meet_v with_o moses_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o commune_v with_o he_o all_o which_o be_v dispose_v according_a to_o god_n own_o appointment_n for_o the_o mercy_n seat_n be_v a_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o alone_a god_n do_v neat_a and_o common_a with_o man_n in_o the_o way_n of_o mercy_n and_o as_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v as_o a_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o christ_n as_o to_o he_o that_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n so_o all_o figure_n and_o prophecy_n aim_v at_o he_o after_o god_n have_v send_v all_o his_o servant_n and_o he_o will_v have_v no_o more_o burnt-offering_n and_o sacrifice_n than_o he_o send_v his_o only_a son_n to_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n unto_o he_o for_o sin_n this_o most_o holy_a and_o bless_a son_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n long_o before_o his_o come_n say_v lo_o i_o come_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n 9_o psal_n 40.6_o 7._o heb._n 10.7_o 9_o o_o god_n he_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o declare_v he_o will_v come_v to_o do_v it_o the_o word_n contain_v a_o particular_a emphasis_n different_a from_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n express_v in_o scripture_n when_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v josiah_n birth_n 45._o 1_o kin._n 13_o 2._o isa_n 44._o &_o 45._o and_o cyrus_n empire_n they_o be_v not_o introduce_v as_o say_v any_o thing_n themselves_o only_o one_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v the_o other_o to_o be_v hold_v and_o support_v because_o at_o that_o time_n they_o be_v not_o but_o here_o the_o son_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o one_o who_o then_o be_v in_o be_v and_o as_o a_o person_n who_o delight_v to_o execute_v his_o father_n will_n as_o he_o effectual_o do_v both_o active_o and_o passive_o and_o this_o he_o declare_v when_o come_v 6.38_o joh._n 6.38_o i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v my_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o when_o upon_o the_o approach_n of_o the_o hour_n wherein_o that_o will_n be_v to_o be_v 12.27_o joh._n 12.27_o his_o soul_n be_v trouble_v he_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o unto_o this_o hour_n and_o when_o the_o bitter_a cup_n which_o cause_v in_o he_o some_o horror_n be_v put_v into_o his_o hand_n 22.42_o luk._n 22.42_o he_o say_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thou_o be_v do_v let_v these_o word_n in_o the_o evangelist_n with_o those_o in_o the_o psalm_n be_v compare_v an●_n there_o will_v appear_v such_o a_o divine_a harmony_n as_o wi●_n convince_v they_o both_o come_v out_o of_o the_o same_o pers●●_n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o in_o the_o psalmis_fw-la see_v a_o steady_a resolution_n such_o as_o become_v a_o divine_a person_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n something_o of_o human_a frailty_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o first_o be_v express_v by_o a_o prophet_n inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o last_o by_o himself_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n however_o come_v be_v mean_v of_o a_o person_n who_o pre-existed_n before_o that_o come_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o the_o circumstance_n o●_n god_n have_v no_o more_o pleasure_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o burnt-offering_n and_o his_o say_n lo_o i_o come_v which_o precede_v his_o come_n do_v demonstrate_v in_o he_o a_o choice_n and_o resolution_n which_o be_v the_o act_n of_o a_o person_n as_o the_o quote_v place_n out_o of_o st._n peter_n do_v denote_v christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o be_v such_o a_o mystery_n as_o the_o angel_n so_o excellent_a and_o know_a creature_n desire_v to_o know_v and_o look_v into_o but_o i_o return_v to_o my_o answer_n to_o their_o objection_n these_o thing_n be_v serious_o consider_v will_v afford_v matter_n enough_o to_o answer_v and_o refute_v the_o cavil_n of_o the_o enemy_n to_o this_o truth_n before_o i_o proceed_v far_o in_o answer_v some_o more_o objection_n of_o they_o i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o i_o because_o they_o make_v a_o scandalous_a exception_n against_o that_o common_a place_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o prove_v the_o most_o holy_a trinity_n there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o add_v something_o more_o to_o what_o in_o the_o beginning_n i_o say_v about_o it_o they_o say_v it_o be_v want_v in_o some_o greek_a copy_n and_o in_o the_o syriack_n but_o through_o the_o fraud_n of_o the_o arrian_n as_o say_v jerome_n and_o erasmus_n can._n praefat._n in_o epist_n can._n who_o socinian_n will_v seem_v to_o appeal_v unto_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a manuscript_n of_o britain_n spain_n and_o rhodes_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o text_n 6._o v._o 4_o 5_o 6._o that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v away_o without_o make_v a_o palpable_a breach_n and_o interruption_n of_o the_o sense_n for_o he_o have_v just_a before_o speak_v of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o agree_v with_o what_o he_o say_v v._o 8_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v witness_n in_o earth_n there_o must_v also_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n there_o must_v be_v witness_n in_o heaven_n as_o there_o be_v in_o earth_n the_o three_o in_o earth_n agree_v in_o one_o the_o three_o in_o heaven_n be_v one_o we_o read_v it_o quote_v by_o nic._n by_o ad_fw-la theoph._n lib._n 1._o &_o in_o disp_n contra_fw-la atrium_n in_o conc._n nic._n athanasius_n so_o do_v varimadum_fw-la do_v contra_fw-la varimadum_fw-la idacius_n so_o arrian_n so_o contra_fw-la arrian_n fulgentius_n also_o it_o be_v quote_v before_o the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n in_o the_o controversy_n against_o the_o arrian_n
brightness_n of_o the_o father_n glory_n to_o show_v that_o as_o from_o a_o lightful_a body_n proceed_v light_a so_o the_o son_n as_o natural_o come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o image_n of_o god_n 1.3_o col._n 1.15_o heb._n 1.3_o and_o another_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n be_v call_v both_o he_o who_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v thereby_o distinguish_v from_o god_n but_o he_o which_o be_v call_v the_o character_n of_o the_o father_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n not_o from_o god_n wherefore_o we_o say_v christ_n as_o mediator_n may_v be_v and_o be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o this_o come_v short_a of_o what_o be_v intend_v to_o express_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v that_o filiation_n to_o be_v ground_v upon_o his_o mediatorship_n these_o few_o thing_n which_o may_v have_v a_o place_n in_o our_o discourse_n be_v premise_v i_o now_o direct_o answer_v the_o objection_n to_o be_v beget_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o become_v god_n to_o be_v beget_v in_o god_n do_v not_o imply_v to_o have_v a_o beginning_n or_o to_o be_v make_v in_o time_n second_o they_o say_v divine_a nature_n admit_v of_o no_o rent_v or_o division_n wherefore_o nothing_o do_v proceed_v that_o be_v different_a in_o number_n from_o it_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o the_o finite_a and_o infinite_a essence_n for_o this_o last_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o person_n without_o multiplication_n separation_n or_o division_n three_o they_o go_v on_o that_o which_o be_v beget_v have_v a_o beginning_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o creature_n but_o not_o in_o god_n four_o nothing_o say_v they_o be_v want_v in_o the_o father_n so_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o give_v he_o a_o son_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v perfect_a therefore_o he_o have_v a_o son_n god_n fecundity_n make_v the_o person_n but_o borrow_v nothing_o from_o without_o 5th_o whatsoever_o come_v from_o unity_n to_o plurality_n can_v be_v perfect_a except_o the_o substance_n be_v multiply_v i_o answer_v god_n do_v not_o come_v nor_o go_v with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o terminus_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la not_o ad_fw-la quem_fw-la no_o place_n from_o which_o and_o to_o which_o but_o god_n be_v always_o god_n be_v not_o divide_v but_o beget_v indivisible_o six_o if_o the_o son_n be_v from_o the_o father_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o father_n have_v be_v divide_v because_o it_o pass_v into_o the_o son_n so_o the_o father_n have_v give_v the_o son_n part_n of_o himself_o and_o so_o the_o son_n have_v deprive_v the_o father_n of_o something_o the_o answer_n be_v the_o son_n be_v not_o asunder_o from_o the_o father_n for_o the_o essence_n be_v the_o same_o there_o be_v no_o rent_v the_o father_n with_o give_v lose_v nothing_o but_o retain_v all_o the_o nature_n be_v whole_a in_o the_o father_n and_o whole_a in_o the_o son_n as_o one_o candle_n light_v another_o without_o any_o dimunition_n of_o its_o own_o light_n seven_o they_o say_v a_o man_n have_v no_o son_n before_o he_o have_v beget_v i_o answer_v nor_o god_n neither_o but_o this_o i_o must_v say_v it_o be_v a_o gross_a mistake_n to_o draw_v consequence_n from_o human_a thing_n to_o divine_a which_o be_v to_o measure_n god_n by_o man_n god_n always_o beget_v as_o the_o sun_n do_v produce_v its_o brightness_n eight_o if_o god_n beget_v it_o be_v either_o according_a to_o his_o nature_n or_o to_o his_o will_n not_o the_o first_o for_o than_o he_o will_v beget_v without_o consideration_n if_o according_a to_o his_o will_n than_o the_o father_n will_n be_v before_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n i_o answer_v he_o beget_v according_a to_o his_o nature_n and_o that_o free_o 9th_o if_o the_o son_n be_v bear_v he_o have_v a_o beginning_n so_o be_v not_o from_o eternity_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v eternal_a the_o son_n eternal_a and_o the_o generation_n eternal_a in_o thing_n create_v to_o beget_v be_v indeed_o to_o produce_v that_o which_o be_v not_o but_o in_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a it_o be_v otherwise_o 10th_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n do_v not_o beget_v we_o say_v a_o spirit_n create_v do_v not_o but_o the_o creator_n exceed_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o spiritual_a creature_n 11th_o if_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v the_o word_n either_o he_o have_v beget_v himself_o or_o another_o but_o neither_o of_o these_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o beget_v himself_o he_o have_v not_o beget_v as_o grant_v nor_o another_o neither_o because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n and_o so_o not_o beget_v at_o all_o i_o answer_v the_o word_n he_o have_v beget_v alium_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la another_o person_n but_o not_o another_o thing_n he_o have_v beget_v another_o who_o be_v god_n but_o not_o another_o god_n 12_o if_o god_n have_v beget_v the_o word_n either_o the_o whole_a divine_a essence_n have_v beget_v or_o only_o the_o father_n person_n if_o the_o essence_n than_o it_o have_v beget_v himself_o or_o another_o both_o which_o be_v absurd_a if_o the_o father_n person_n have_v beget_v either_o he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n or_o else_o the_o word_n be_v not_o that_o son_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n wherefore_o the_o father_n have_v not_o beget_v the_o son_n from_o eternity_n we_o answer_v the_o father_n have_v of_o himself_o beget_v from_o eternity_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o the_o father_n only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n it_o be_v enough_o he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n not_o of_o two_o person_n but_o of_o the_o father_n these_o objection_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o short_a and_o answer_v as_o brief_o i_o look_v not_o upon_o as_o material_a because_o not_o take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o only_a judge_n of_o those_o controversy_n but_o herein_o they_o show_v how_o they_o affect_v sophistry_n to_o impose_v upon_o some_o sort_n of_o people_n but_o however_o some_o advantage_n we_o get_v by_o it_o for_o out_o of_o all_o these_o it_o appear_v how_o this_o true_a heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n they_o have_v three_o or_o four_o cavil_n or_o question_n more_o which_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v answer_v in_o few_o word_n first_o whether_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n when_o he_o be_v already_o a_o son_n or_o before_o he_o be_v the_o son_n i_o answer_v the_o father_n be_v eternal_a the_o son_n eternal_a and_o beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n which_o have_v no_o part_n the_o father_n can_v no_o more_o be_v without_o the_o son_n than_o the_o sun_n without_o light_n or_o light_n without_o brightness_n their_o second_o questie_n on_o be_v whether_o the_o father_n after_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n have_v beget_v any_o other_o because_o he_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v if_o he_o have_v beget_v none_o other_o than_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o power_n of_o beget_v but_o i_o answer_v that_o generation_n be_v without_o time_n always_o perfect_a not_o successive_a without_o beginning_n or_o end_n the_o 3d_o be_v the_o father_n have_v beget_v either_o unwilling_a or_o willing_a if_o unwilling_a than_o he_o have_v suffer_v something_o which_o he_o will_v not_o if_o willing_a than_o his_o will_n be_v before_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n i_o say_v part_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v answer_v a_o little_a before_o whereunto_o i_o shall_v add_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o before_o all_o creature_n for_o he_o have_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o please_v 115.3_o psal_n 115.3_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o the_o son_n for_o of_o he_o we_o read_v in_o scripture_n he_o be_v and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n so_o the_o son_n be_v no_o creature_n neither_o be_v he_o make_v by_o the_o will_n as_o creature_n be_v he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o be_v coeternal_a with_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n will_n be_v in_o he_o for_o in_o he_o he_o will_v and_o by_o he_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v from_o nature_n there_o be_v no_o fore-counsel_n or_o predeliberation_n yet_o the_o father_n have_v not_o beget_v be_v unwilling_a for_o he_o beget_v with_o a_o will_n not_o antecedent_n but_o concomitant_a thus_o the_o father_n person_n be_v not_o because_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v but_o because_o he_o be_v and_o will_v not_o himself_o not_o to_o be_v so_o the_o son_n be_v not_o bear_v against_o the_o father_n will_n neither_o do_v the_o father_n will_v go_v before_o his_o generation_n a_o
to_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v either_o personal_o namely_o as_o he_o beget_v and_o as_o he_o be_v beget_v and_o thus_o the_o son_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o they_o separately_z christ_n be_v distinguish_v from_o god_n both_o in_o person_n and_o office_n not_o in_o the_o godhead_n or_o essence_n or_o else_o the_o name_n be_v absolute_o simple_o 14.1_o rom._n 8.31_o 32._o 1_o tim._n 1.1_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o joh._n 14.1_o and_o essential_o take_v when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o godhead_n then_o as_o to_o the_o deity_n the_o son_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n as_o when_o christ_n say_v there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v himself_o from_o be_v good_a it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o the_o man_n if_o thou_o believe_v i_o to_o be_v good_a for_o so_o thou_o call_v i_o thou_o must_v also_o believe_v i_o to_o be_v god_n for_o none_o be_v good_a but_o god_n and_o this_o be_v to_o have_v the_o man_n to_o look_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v god_n again_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v unto_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a and_o that_o god_n be_v able_a out_o of_o stone_n to_o rise_v child_n unto_o abraham_n when_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o salutation_n name_n first_o god_n and_o our_o father_n and_o then_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n to_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v therein_o attribute_v unto_o the_o father_n as_o the_o spring_n and_o first_o in_o order_n of_o the_o deity_n than_o the_o son_n be_v propose_v as_o mediator_n to_o lead_v we_o unto_o god_n for_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o christ_n unto_o the_o father_n to_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o together_o with_o the_o father_n for_o he_o say_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o thereby_o show_v we_o ought_v to_o render_v unto_o he_o the_o same_o thing_n we_o render_v to_o the_o father_n wherefore_o in_o several_a place_n we_o read_v how_o when_o the_o name_n father_n be_v add_v yet_o that_o of_o god_n be_v immediate_o put_v before_o when_o general_o something_o be_v teach_v which_o belong_v to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n then_o have_v name_v the_o father_n the_o mediator_n be_v mention_v to_o breed_v in_o we_o hope_n and_o comfort_n thus_o the_o same_o apostle_n oppose_v one_o god_n to_o idol_n where_o christ_n be_v not_o exclude_v for_o immediate_o in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o declare_v who_o that_o one_o god_n be_v namely_o the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n 6._o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o ephes_n 4.5_o 6._o and_o we_o by_o he_o thus_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o god_n as_o there_o be_v one_o baptism_n christ_n in_o who_o name_n we_o be_v baptize_v be_v not_o exclude_v from_o that_o oneness_n of_o godhead_n 14.6_o joh._n 14.6_o and_o because_o he_o will_v come_v to_o the_o mediator_n he_o very_o fit_o name_v the_o father_n to_o who_o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o deity_n there_o be_v no_o approach_n without_o the_o mediator_n so_o by_o the_o name_n father_n be_v represent_v god_n essential_o offend_v by_o mankind_n and_o by_o the_o son_n and_o christ_n that_o person_n of_o the_o adorable_a trinity_n who_o have_v undertake_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n and_o reconcile_v we_o unto_o god_n he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o none_o can_v come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o he_o so_o when_o we_o read_v the_o word_n god_n we_o must_v not_o separate_v the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n because_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o moreover_o they_o object_v the_o father_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n of_o himself_o have_v all_o of_o himself_o and_o act_n of_o himself_o but_o the_o son_n be_v not_o god_n of_o himself_o he_o be_v from_o the_o father_n himself_z he_o say_v he_o come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n send_v he_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v they_o go_z upou_fw-mi a_o wrong_a principle_n for_o they_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v of_o one self_o or_o of_o another_o to_o import_v a_o different_a essence_n or_o nature_n for_o even_o in_o create_a thing_n that_o which_o be_v beget_v be_v ever_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o which_o have_v beget_v but_o by_o reason_n of_o imperfection_n these_o be_v one_o only_o in_o species_n but_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o in_o species_n or_o kind_a because_o thus_o they_o will_v make_v two_o god_n what_o they_o add_v how_o in_o divine_a thing_n he_o that_o beget_v and_o he_o that_o be_v beget_v be_v not_o one_o either_o in_o essence_n or_o species_n because_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o one_o with_o god_n either_o in_o nature_n or_o kind_a be_v very_o frivolous_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o be_v call_v son_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o very_a different_a account_n from_o that_o on_o which_o christ_n be_v so_o call_v none_o be_v ever_o call_v god_n own_o and_o proper_a son_n only_o beget_v come_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n for_o unto_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n or_o man_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n 1.5_o heb._n 1.5_o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o again_o i_o will_v be_v to_o he_o a_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o son_n moreover_o they_o be_v mistake_v to_o think_v that_o to_o be_v of_o another_o be_v to_o be_v of_o a_o different_a and_o inferior_a nature_n indeed_o he_o who_o receive_v not_o all_o but_o out_o of_o favour_n only_a part_n of_o what_o another_o have_v may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v inferior_a to_o he_o of_o who_o he_o receive_v but_o he_o not_o so_o who_o have_v all_o that_o another_o have_v not_o by_o favour_n but_o by_o nature_n and_o generation_n they_o be_v far_a much_o mistake_v when_o they_o deny_v christ_n simple_o and_o absolute_o to_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o for_o he_o must_v need_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o be_v or_o essence_n of_o himself_o life_n of_o himself_o holy_a of_o himself_o power_n of_o himself_o be_v good_a of_o himself_o light_n of_o himself_o truth_n of_o himself_o wisdom_n of_o himself_o righteousness_n of_o himself_o perfect_a of_o himself_o and_o glory_n of_o himself_o which_o all_o be_v attribute_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o to_o who_o they_o belong_v so_o do_v also_o divine_a nature_n all_o which_o attribute_n be_v by_o the_o ancient_a orthodox_n doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o they_o by_o the_o eminent_a instrument_n of_o reformation_n own_v to_o be_v the_o right_n and_o property_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n in_o several_a place_n especial_o that_o of_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o by_o i_o already_o quote_v we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v from_o eternity_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o second_o person_n on_o such_o a_o account_n we_o own_o the_o son_n to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n see_v he_o be_v true_a son_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v he_o as_o god_n he_o be_v altogether_o self_n god_n and_o god_n of_o himself_o for_o the_o divinity_n be_v whole_o unbegotten_a and_o of_o herself_o know_v of_o no_o beginning_n and_o need_v not_o to_o borrow_v of_o other_o what_o it_o have_v of_o itself_o and_o if_o to_o the_o son_n one_o will_v attribute_v a_o beget_v and_o form_v essence_n this_o be_v from_o the_o father_n to_o make_v a_o second_o god_n last_o many_o of_o the_o place_n which_o the_o adversary_n do_v heap_v up_o do_v speak_v of_o christ_n office_n of_o mediator_n which_o they_o improper_o misapply_v to_o his_o divine_a nature_n for_o though_o christ_n humane_a nature_n have_v no_o personality_n but_o be_v uphold_v by_o the_o divine_a person_n yet_o that_o uphold_v do_v not_o confound_v the_o nature_n otherwise_o passion_n and_o death_n may_v be_v attribute_v to_o divine_a nature_n on_o this_o matter_n they_o form_v other_o argument_n ground_v upon_o false_a supposition_n as_o sometime_o they_o will_v have_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v three_o spirit_n and_o the_o word_n unbegotten_a beget_v and_o proceed_v
to_o be_v essential_a difference_n when_o to_o speak_v of_o three_o spirit_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v as_o good_a as_o to_o say_v there_o be_v three_o god_n 8.4_o 1_o cor._n 8.4_o whilst_o scripture_n say_v there_o be_v none_o other_o god_n but_o one_o who_o have_v his_o be_v from_o himself_o and_o from_o none_o else_o for_o we_o must_v say_v of_o every_o god_n so_o call_v which_o be_v not_o such_o by_o nature_n 8.6_o hosea_n 8.6_o what_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o the_o calf_n of_o samaria_n the_o workman_n make_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o god_n and_o it_o be_v a_o right_a consequence_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v god_n that_o be_v make_v by_o another_o so_o then_o to_o talk_v of_o three_o spirit_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v to_o set_v up_o three_o god_n for_o god_n as_o our_o saviour_n say_v absolute_o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o when_o we_o say_v spirit_n we_o understand_v his_o nature_n for_o a_o spirit_n be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n and_o be_v thus_o they_o go_v on_o still_o upon_o their_o supposition_n they_o will_v have_v the_o word_n unbegotten_a beget_v and_o proceed_v to_o be_v essential_a difference_n and_o not_o personal_a as_o they_o be_v so_o other_o time_n they_o will_v have_v the_o son_n because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o father_n not_o to_o be_v one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n who_o exi_v of_o himself_o and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v the_o one_o true_a god_n because_o he_o have_v a_o be_v from_o another_o but_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o be_v of_o essence_n and_o that_o of_o the_o person_n the_o first_o the_o son_n have_v of_o itself_o and_o the_o second_o of_o the_o father_n they_o farther_z object_n he_o that_o be_v mediator_n with_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n himself_o for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o three_o absurdity_n say_v they_o will_v follow_v the_o first_o god_n will_v be_v inferior_a to_o himself_o two_o god_n will_v pray_v to_o himself_o three_o the_o party_n offend_v shall_v be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o but_o to_o the_o first_o we_o answer_v though_o god_n be_v mediator_n it_o follow_v not_o he_o be_v inferior_a to_o himself_o for_o though_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o office_n he_o that_o be_v a_o mediator_n be_v inferior_a to_o he_o who_o he_o intercede_v with_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o thereby_o inferior_a in_o nature_n for_o even_o among_o man_n one_o equal_a do_v intercede_v with_o his_o equal_n as_o to_o the_o second_o the_o son_n pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o we_o exclude_v not_o the_o divine_a from_o intercede_v for_o it_o belong_v to_o it_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v the_o eternal_a will_n of_o the_o son_n that_o the_o father_n will_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n receive_v we_o into_o favour_n the_o prayer_n and_o submission_n belong_v to_o humane_a nature_n but_o the_o divine_a make_v they_o effectual_a both_o nature_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o person_n the_o divine_a be_v unite_v with_o the_o humane_a mediate_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n but_o the_o same_o person_n be_v immediate_o unite_v to_o humane_a nature_n as_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v absurd_a indeed_o if_o the_o party_n offend_v be_v mediator_n when_o there_o be_v but_o one_o person_n offend_v but_o where_o several_a person_n be_v offend_v there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n if_o by_o their_o common_a consent_n one_o of_o those_o offend_a person_n offer_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o offender_n and_o to_o reconcile_v and_o in_o this_o case_n it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o for_o it_o be_v require_v that_o the_o reconciler_n shall_v be_v god_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o cavil_v to_o say_v that_o he_o with_o who_o the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n can_v not_o be_v reconcile_v and_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n with_o himself_o or_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o only_o with_o the_o father_n for_o first_o not_o only_o he_o be_v reconcile_v and_o appease_v by_o the_o mediator_n with_o who_o the_o son_n perform_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n but_o also_o they_o that_o be_v join_v and_o about_o it_o agree_v with_o he_o wherefore_o see_v in_o every_o thing_n the_o will_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v agree_v it_o follow_v that_o through_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o mediator_n the_o father_n be_v full_o satisfy_v the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o too_o i_o add_v as_o to_o the_o second_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a as_o they_o think_v that_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v the_o office_n of_o mediator_n in_o both_o capacity_n for_o as_o god_n be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n he_o receive_v we_o into_o favour_n and_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n according_a to_o both_o nature_n so_o as_o he_o be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n we_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n and_o although_o this_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n be_v common_a to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o the_o mediator_n be_v say_v to_o intercede_v for_o we_o with_o the_o father_n who_o be_v consider_v as_o the_o spring_n of_o all_o divine_a counsel_n and_o operation_n who_o be_v willing_a that_o the_o son_n shall_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n our_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o son_n to_o will_n and_o do_v otherwise_o to_o this_o purpose_n make_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v about_o our_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o what_o the_o evangelist_n write_v he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n 21_o 2_o cor._n 5.18_o 19_o 20_o 21_o and_o keep_v they_o he_o it_o be_v that_o love_v i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o manifest_v myself_o unto_o he_o 23._o john_n 14.21_o 23._o to_o the_o same_o effect_n do_v tend_v what_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n of_o christ_n who_o when_o he_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n sit_v down_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a so_o than_o the_o son_n be_v appease_v 3.3_o heb._n 3.3_o and_o forgive_v our_o sin_n receive_v we_o into_o favour_n and_o give_v we_o eternal_a life_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o own_o satisfaction_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v the_o same_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n give_v by_o the_o son_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o son_n who_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n receive_v we_o it_o be_v call_v his_o will_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o father_n it_o be_v call_v mediation_n or_o intercession_n therein_o the_o will_n of_o the_o son_n in_o order_n of_o the_o person_n and_o divine_a work_v do_v follow_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n hence_o it_o appear_v how_o they_o do_v ill_a to_o confound_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n under_o his_o office_n of_o mediator_n as_o such_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n and_o teach_v we_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n that_o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o father_n through_o the_o mediator_n yet_o he_o thereby_o never_o intend_v to_o exclude_v or_o deprive_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o due_a or_o right_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n to_o worship_v the_o father_n in_o the_o face_n and_o through_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o mediator_n for_o we_o worship_v the_o father_n not_o in_o his_o person_n only_o but_o of_o the_o whole_a nature_n and_o christ_n in_o john_n 5.22_o as_o in_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n propose_v himself_o to_o be_v worship_v for_o adoration_n be_v not_o confine_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n only_o they_o say_v if_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o christ_n than_o he_o be_v not_o god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n say_v 14.28_o john_n 14.28_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o therefore_o be_v not_o god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n in_o this_o place_n christ_n speak_v not_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o of_o his_o office_n the_o father_n do_v send_v and_o the_o son_n be_v send_v and_o though_o he_o be_v less_o as_o to_o his_o humanity_n he_o be_v equal_a in_o relation_n to_o his_o divinity_n wherefore_o i_o answer_v christ_n be_v less_o than_o his_o father_n in_o respect_n to_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o assume_v with_o the_o infirmity_n thereof_o sin_n except_v for_o he_o be_v hungry_a weary_a sorrowful_a and_o the_o like_a and_o we_o read_v he_o weep_v though_o never_o that_o he_o laugh_v but_o before_o that_o assumption_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o have_v a_o be_v of_o another_o nature_n which_o can_v be_v no_o
express_a image_n of_o the_o father_n person_n because_o in_o he_o through_o that_o eternal_a generation_n be_v express_v the_o whole_a person_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n for_o which_o image_n of_o god_n he_o be_v call_v the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v beget_v before_o there_o be_v any_o creature_n and_o so_o from_o eternity_n as_o in_o the_o form_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n who_o otherwise_o have_v not_o and_o ow_v none_o equal_a to_o himself_o 1●_n 2_o sam._n 7_o 1●_n in_o these_o high_a and_o divine_a matter_n man_n must_v not_o presume_v beyond_o what_o be_v write_v and_o reveal_v in_o god_n word_n nor_o wrest_v the_o delign_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o force_v a_o unusual_a and_o contrary_a sense_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v ourselves_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o that_o holy_a reverence_n which_o become_v we_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n in_o these_o very_a thing_n hierom_n as_o say_v before_o be_v very_a caution_n about_o acknowledge_v three_o hypostasis_n in_o the_o deity_n because_o he_o think_v the_o word_n to_o denote_v substance_n when_o god_n be_v upon_o withdraw_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n from_o among_o his_o people_n 4.4_o chap._n 4.4_o he_o by_o mal●c●y_n the_o last_o of_o the_o prophet_n command_v they_o to_o remember_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n so_o now_o when_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n cease_v so_o long_o since_o man_n shall_v whole_o acquiesce_v to_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n which_o those_o servant_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n leave_v for_o our_o use_n and_o instruction_n wherein_o we_o learn_v how_o god_n have_v reveal_v himself_o and_o communicate_v his_o own_o infinite_a fullness_n unto_o his_o creature_n in_o all_o of_o they_o immediate_o by_o his_o own_o son_n first_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n second_o in_o their_o providential_a disposal_n and_o rule_n three_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o will_n and_o ordinance_n fourthly_a in_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n in_o none_o of_o which_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n otherwise_o represent_v unto_o we_o than_o in_o and_o by_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n for_o the_o whole_a end_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v 4.12_o 2_o cor._n 4.6_o 1_o tim_n 6.10_o 1_o ●o●n_n 4.12_o to_o give_v knowledge_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d visible_a god_n who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v now_o in_o that_o forename_a prophecy_n of_o malachy_n the_o same_o chapter_n and_o two_o last_o verse_n the_o come_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v often_o be_v prophesy_v of_o before_o be_v again_o promise_v yea_o of_o the_o lord_n himself_o who_o then_o be_v and_o have_v be_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o be_v to_o come_v only_o at_o such_o a_o time_n which_o be_v call_v the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o against_o the_o appear_a and_o long_o before_o of_o that_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n all_o those_o star_n the_o prophet_n be_v to_o disappear_v one_o only_o except_v like_o the_o morningstar_n before_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o elijah_n the_o prophet_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v mean_v as_o john_n baptist_n be_v by_o elijah_n so_o call_v because_o he_o come_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n for_o both_o be_v endow_v with_o a_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o spare_v neither_o king_n nor_o people_n and_o the_o evangelist_n make_v use_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n he_o shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n luke_n 1.17_o compare_v with_o matt._n 11.14_o mark_v 9.11_o 12_o 13._o that_o same_o lord_n who_o come_v with_o such_o concomitant_n as_o great_a and_o dreadful_a be_v jehovah_n himself_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o word_n though_o in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n be_v so_o conspicuous_a glorious_a and_o great_a as_o he_o in_o one_o particular_a say_v himself_o to_o the_o man_n out_o of_o who_o he_o have_v cast_v a_o legion_n of_o devil_n return_v to_o thy_o own_o house_n 8.39_o luk._n 8.39_o and_o show_v what_o great_a thing_n god_n have_v do_v unto_o thou_o and_o the_o evangelist_n who_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n relate_v christ_n word_n to_o the_o man_n do_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o same_o declare_v what_o the_o man_n do_v and_o he_o go_v his_o way_n and_o publish_v throughout_o the_o whole_a city_n how_o great_a thing_n jesus_n have_v do_v unto_o he_o he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o same_o word_n how_o great_a thing_n only_o instead_o of_o god_n he_o say_v jesus_n so_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o god_n that_o have_v do_v great_a thing_n unto_o he_o this_o be_v in_o the_o land_n of_o judah_n where_o no_o other_o god_n but_o the_o true_a god_n of_o israel_n be_v own_a and_o worship_v so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v that_o same_o god_n who_o the_o father_n from_o heaven_n call_v his_o son_n which_o be_v the_o name_n mention_v 2.9_o phil._n 2.9_o that_o be_v above_o every_o name_n and_o this_o name_n more_o excellent_a than_o any_o give_v the_o angel_n 1.4_o heb._n 1.4_o he_o have_v obtain_v by_o inheritance_n not_o by_o favour_n according_a to_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n for_o the_o name_n by_o he_o design_v be_v that_o of_o son_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n with_o the_o exegetical_a adjunct_n of_o his_o generation_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o 13.33_o act_n 13.33_o which_o word_n paul_n do_v apply_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o day_n of_o eternity_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o time_n speak_v in_o relation_n to_o god_n with_o who_o be_v no_o part_n of_o time_n as_o with_o man_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v with_o god_n be_v not_o day_n but_o only_o one_o day_n which_o have_v no_o beginning_n and_o shall_v have_v no_o end_n it_o be_v never_o say_v to_o any_o angel_n personal_o upon_o his_o own_o account_n thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n much_o less_o with_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o appellation_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o so_o in_o that_o place_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o general_a name_n of_o a_o son_n but_o of_o the_o particular_a appropriation_n thereof_o unto_o the_o lord_n jesus_n upon_o his_o own_o account_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o be_v the_o first-born_a the_o thing_n itself_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o be_v the_o first_o beget_v but_o the_o dignity_n and_o privilege_n that_o attend_v it_o 89.27_o psal_n 89.27_o thus_o god_n say_v of_o david_n i_o will_v make_v he_o my_o first-born_a explain_v in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n high_a than_o the_o king_n of_o the_o carth_n thus_o among_o man_n one_o may_v say_v i_o will_v make_v such_o a_o one_o my_o first-born_a or_o my_o heir_n which_o be_v the_o privilege_n attend_v the_o birthright_n this_o be_v christ_n title_n by_o nature_n and_o not_o by_o office_n anoint_v be_v a_o ceremony_n use_v to_o make_v and_o declare_v a_o king_n but_o that_o anoint_v make_v he_o not_o a_o man_n for_o he_o be_v so_o before_o so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v god_n before_o he_o be_v christ_n chap._n xi_o some_o animadversion_n upon_o a_o book_n call_v christianity_n not_o mysterious_a what_o i_o say_v somewhat_o before_o concern_v reason_n put_v i_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o thing_n i_o promise_v about_o the_o middle_n of_o my_o discourse_n namely_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o book_n with_o the_o title_n of_o christianity_n not_o mysterious_a wherein_o the_o author_n undertake_v to_o show_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o gospel_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n against_o or_o above_o reason_n and_o though_o i_o have_v hardly_o any_o room_n leave_v yet_o to_o be_v as_o good_a as_o my_o word_n i_o must_v brief_o say_v something_o to_o it_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o against_o all_o human_a authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n and_o own_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a competent_a judge_n and_o allow_v of_o our_o reason_n as_o long_o as_o it_o draw_v out_o of_o that_o spring_n and_o not_o otherwise_o let_v we_o be_v sincere_a and_o avoid_v ambiguity_n there_o be_v true_a and_o sound_a reason_n whereof_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o right_a and_o stand_v infallible_a rule_n for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v the_o measure_n of_o all_o truth_n and_o equity_n and_o our_o reason_n to_o be_v reason_n indeed_o must_v be_v guide_v by_o that_o or_o else_o it_o do_v deviate_v from_o the_o rule_n there_o be_v also_o that_o
express_v in_o scripture_n the_o omission_n whereof_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n deserve_v the_o heavy_a judgement_n see_v what_o character_n be_v give_v of_o those_o who_o neglect_v it_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n have_v not_o call_v upon_o god_n 53.4_o psal_n 53.4_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sin_n as_o deserve_v no_o less_o than_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n pour_v out_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n that_o have_v not_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n and_o as_o for_o i_o 79.6_o psal_n 79.6_o say_v david_n in_o another_o place_n and_o all_o that_o true_o fear_v god_n with_o he_o i_o give_v myself_o unto_o prayer_n 109.4_o psal_n 109.4_o so_o that_o the_o best_a commendation_n under_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o can_v be_v give_v of_o a_o man_n be_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o ananias_n of_o paul_n 9.11_o act_n 9.11_o behold_v he_o pray_v and_o how_o good_a a_o success_n cornclius_n his_o prayer_n be_v crown_v withal_o the_o angel_n declare_v it_o unto_o he_o thy_o prayer_n be_v come_v up_o for_o a_o memorial_n before_o god_n 10.4_o chap._n 10.4_o and_o it_o will_v prove_v a_o long_a work_n for_o one_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o necessity_n and_o excellency_n of_o that_o duty_n which_o i_o may_v say_v do_v in_o some_o respect_n include_v every_o other_o thing_n which_o man_n owe_v god_n and_o hence_o we_o may_v conclude_v what_o a_o transcendent_a eminency_n there_o be_v in_o christ_n no_o less_o than_o his_o divinity_n see_v he_o be_v the_o proper_a object_n of_o a_o duty_n to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n unto_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o his_o due_n it_o be_v ascribe_v in_o the_o two_o branch_n thereof_o namely_o prayer_n and_o praise_n by_o prayer_n we_o ask_v of_o christ_n or_o of_o god_n through_o christ_n the_o thing_n we_o want_v and_o by_o praise_n or_o thanksgiving_n we_o return_v he_o thanks_o for_o what_o we_o receive_v call_v upon_o i_o in_o time_n of_o trouble_n 50.15_o psal_n 50.15_o i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o wherein_o both_o part_n be_v contain_v how_o many_o prayer_n do_v that_o choose_a vessel_n paul_n put_v up_o to_o god_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o how_o often_o in_o his_o epistle_n do_v he_o give_v thanks_o with_o we_o prayer_n and_o adoration_n differ_v not_o formal_o only_a as_o to_o the_o manner_n order_n and_o like_a circumstance_n but_o be_v the_o same_o in_o nature_n diversify_v only_o according_a to_o occasion_n but_o still_o remain_v the_o same_o as_o to_o the_o essence_n eye_n hand_n and_o heart_n not_o be_v lift_v up_o upon_o any_o thing_n under_o heaven_n where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n socinian_n do_v thus_o distinguish_v between_o adoration_n and_o invocation_n the_o first_o signify_v only_o a_o reverend_a bow_v to_o any_o one_o the_o last_o include_v a_o religious_a sue_n for_o help_n that_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v even_o by_o all_o angel_n as_o be_v command_v and_o necessary_a but_o this_o only_a by_o man_n voluntary_o yet_o lawful_a and_o expedient_a the_o ground_n of_o the_o first_o in_o christ_n be_v majesty_n as_o power_n be_v of_o the_o last_o thus_o they_o always_o clip_v one_o thing_n or_o other_o of_o his_o prerogative_n as_o if_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v not_o equal_o bind_v to_o adore_v and_o worship_v he_o for_o where_o we_o find_v let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o there_o it_o be_v also_o write_v let_v all_o man_n honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n and_o man_n be_v as_o well_o command_v to_o act_v their_o part_n as_o angel_n be_v to_o do_v they_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o original_n to_o worship_n be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o where_o use_v but_o for_o the_o religious_a worship_n due_a to_o god_n alone_o and_o when_o it_o be_v mention_v as_o do_v unto_o any_o but_o god_n it_o be_v remember_v as_o their_o idolatry_n as_o rev._n 13.12_o 15._o or_o to_o forbid_v it_o as_o chap._n 19.10_o and_o 22.9_o so_o the_o worship_n which_o god_n command_v angel_n to_o render_v his_o son_n be_v religious_a by_o virtue_n of_o his_o authority_n which_o alone_o can_v make_v 〈◊〉_d worship_n religious_a christ_n at_o his_o very_a first_o come_n into_o the_o world_n and_o not_o only_o after_o his_o assension_n be_v a_o fit_a object_n of_o adoration_n now_o out_o of_o scripture_n we_o prove_v how_o christ_n be_v call_v upon_o and_o pray_v to_o 7.59_o act_n 7.59_o they_o stone_v stephen_n call_v upon_o god_n and_o say_n lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n he_o call_v he_o lord_n and_o god_n he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a one_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o though_o the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o be_v a_o die_a when_o no_o help_n in_o man_n make_v it_o very_o considerable_a many_o other_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o this_o description_n be_v make_v of_o christian_n and_o believer_n 9.13.14_o act_n 9.13.14_o that_o they_o call_v upon_o he_o thus_o ananias_n lord_n he_o have_v authority_n saul_n from_o the_o chief_a priest_n to_o bind_v all_o that_o call_v on_o thy_o name_n all_o that_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n most_o of_o his_o epistle_n paul_n begin_v with_o wish_v grace_n peace_n and_o mercy_n not_o only_o from_o god_n the_o father_n but_o also_o from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o often_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o conclude_v thus_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o you_o all_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o favour_n and_o mercy_n for_o whosoever_o wish_v any_o one_o grace_n and_o peace_n from_o christ_n thereby_o pray_v to_o christ_n to_o bestow_v grace_n and_o favour_n upon_o such_o a_o one_o 9_o 2_o cor._n 12.8_o 9_o and_o in_o plain_a and_o clear_a term_n he_o call_v upon_o and_o pray_v to_o christ_n for_o this_o thing_n i_o beseech_v the_o lord_n thrice_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o for_o my_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n this_o be_v to_o speak_v as_o god_n do_v not_o only_a paul_n call_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o say_v there_o be_v some_o in_o every_o place_n that_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n 1.2_o 1_o cor._n 1.2_o to_o who_o all_o as_o to_o the_o church_n in_o corinth_n he_o direct_v his_o epistle_n and_o no_o wonder_n if_o they_o who_o be_v desirous_a of_o their_o spiritual_a welfare_n do_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o be_v so_o rich_a unto_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v entail_v salvation_n upon_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o duty_n which_o i_o speak_v not_o as_o of_o myself_o 2.21_o rom._n 10.12_o 13._o act_n 2.21_o but_o two_o apostle_n will_v be_v bind_v for_o it_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v say_v one_o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v say_v another_o 2.32_o joel_n 2.32_o and_o both_o have_v a_o prophet_n for_o security_n of_o what_o they_o say_v now_o prayer_n be_v a_o religious_a duty_n to_o be_v direct_v to_o none_o but_o to_o god_n all_o this_o be_v example_n but_o the_o reason_n be_v this_o he_o without_o who_o we_o can_v call_v upon_o the_o father_n must_v also_o be_v call_v upon_o but_o the_o father_n we_o can_v call_v upon_o without_o christ_n 14.6_o john_n 14.6_o because_o none_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o he_o and_o he_o be_v the_o way_n but_o here_o be_v a_o command_n beside_o 16.24_o chap._n 16.24_o hitherto_o have_v you_o ask_v nothing_o in_o my_o name_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v there_o be_v a_o place_n in_o scripture_n where_o three_o part_n of_o worship_n due_a to_o christ_n 22.16_o act_n 22.16_o be_v contain_v and_o now_o say_v ananias_n unto_o paul_n why_o tarry_v thou_o be_v baptize_v and_o wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o all_o three_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o first_o and_o last_o be_v plain_a but_o faith_n be_v mean_v by_o wash_v away_o sin_n which_o be_v wash_v when_o forgive_v now_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v when_o we_o be_v justify_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n 26.18_o chap._n 26.18_o or_o when_o we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o he_o against_o this_o it_o be_v argue_v out_o of_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n our_o father_n that_o there_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o father_n exclusive_o to_o the_o son_n but_o in_o that_o place_n as_o in_o several_a other_o the_o word_n father_n be_v not_o take_v personal_o but_o